IGNOU Material Political Theory Book-2
IGNOU Material Political Theory Book-2
IGNOU Material Political Theory Book-2
Structure
15.1 Introduction
15.2 What is Liberalism?
15.3 Characteristics ofLiberalism
15.4 Rise ofLiberalism
15.5 Ideology of Classical Liberalism -Views on Man, Society, Economy and State
15.6 Critical Evaluation
15.7 Summary
15.8 Exercises
Liberalism is the dominant ideology of the present-day Western world. The history ofEngland,
Western Europe and America for the last 300 years is closely associated with tlie evolution
and development of liberal tliought. Liberalism was the product of the climate of opinion that
emerged at the time of the Renaissance qnd Reformation in Europe. As an ideology and a way
of life, 'it reflected the economic, social and political aspirations of the rising middle class
which later on became the capitalist class'. In the sixteenth and the seventeenth centuries,
when the feudal system was cracking up, a new political system was taking its place. The
establishment of the absolute nation-states in England and Europe gave birth to a kind o f
political systen~in which the authority of tlie Icing was absolute. The beginning of liberalism
was a protest against the hierarchical and privileged authority and monarchy -a protest which
involved every aspect of life. The main slogan OF lhc protest was freedom - freedom from
every authority which is capable of acting capriciousiy and arbitrarily along with freedom of
the individual to develop all of his potentialities as a human being endowed with reason. To
achieve the liberty of the individual and to challenge the authority of the state, liberalism
demanded liberty in every field of life: intellectual, social, religious, cultural, political and
econolnic etc. The central problem with which these liberties were concerned is the relationship
between the individual and the state. The negative or the classical aspect of liberalism remained
dominant for a very long tieme.The initial aim of liberalism was more destructive than
constructive; its purpose was not to elucidate positive aims of civilization, but to remove
hindrances in the path of the develop~nentof the individual. Till the later half of the 19th
century, it was a progreBsive ideology fighting against cruelty, superstitions, intolerance and
arbitrary governments. It fought for the rights of inan and of nations. During the last hundred
years, it had to face the challenges of other ideologies and political movements such as
democracy, marxism, socialism and fascism. It absorbed delnocracy and sociafisin to a great
extent in the name of the welfare state, fought fascism tooth and nail but could not overcome
marxism. In the mid-twentieth century, in the face of marxism, it became an ideology of
status quo, defensive and conservative, even counter revolutionary, out of touch with and
usually hostile to the radical and revolutionary movements of the day, However, with the fall
of the socialist regimes in the former Soviet Union and Eastern Europe and the withering
away of socialist ideology, classical liberalisrn (in its new avatar of libertarianism) is once
again becoming the dominant ideology of the contemporary world.
WHAT IS LIBERALISM?
Liberalism is too dynamic and flexible a concept to be contained in a precise definition. Right
from its inception, it has been cor~tinuouslychanging, adding sometiling and discarding the
other. As Alblaster writes, 'liberalism should be seen not as a fixed at-id absolute term, as a
collection of unchanging inoral and political values belt as a specific historical movement of
ideas in the modern era that began with Renaissance and Reformation. It has undergone many
changes and requires a historical rather than a static type of analysis.' Sin~ilarly,Laski writes,
'it (Liberalism) is not easy to'describe, much less to define, for it is hardly less a habit of mind
than a body of doctrine'. To quote Haclter, 'Liberalism has be come so common a term in the
vocabulary of politics that it is a brave n1an who will try to give it a precise definition. It is a
view of the individual, of the state, and of the relations between them'. Almost the same view
is expressed by Grimes, 'liberalism is not a static creed or dogma, for dogmatism provides its
own restraints.rt'is rather a tentative attitude towards social problems which stresses the role
of reason and I~uinaningenuity.. . liberal isin looks ahead with a flexible approach, seeking to
make future better for more people, as conservatism loolts back, aiming mainly to preserve
the attainment of the past.' AIthough the liberal ideas are about 300 years old, the word
'liberalism' did not corne into use till the beginning ofthe ni~ieteentlicentury. According to
Richard Wellheim, 'lihzralisrr~is the belief in the value of liberty ofthe individual'. According
to Sartori, 'very simply, libel-alism is the theory and practice of individual liberty, juridical,
defence and the cor~stitutionalstate'. Bullock and Silock emphasize the belief in freedom and
conscience as the twin foundations of liberalisln. Grime writes, 'It represents a system of
ideas that aim at the realization of the pluralist society, favouring diversity of politics,
econo~nics,religion rzl1~1othel:cultural life. It seeks in its simplest sense to advance the freedom
of~nan... it seeks to increase individuality ofman by increasing his area ofchoice and decision.'
Siinitarly, Laski writes, 'Iliboralisln implies a passion for liberty; and that the passion may be
compelling. it requires a power to be tolerant; even sceptical about opinion and tendencies
you hold to be dangerous which is one of the rarest human qualities'. EIallowell defines
liberalis111 as 'the embocli~ncntofthe deliland for fiecdoln in every sphere of life - intellectual,
social, religious, political 2nd econo~nic'.Schapiro talks of liberalisnn as an attitude of life -
sceptical, experimental, rational and free. According to Icoerner, 'liberalisln begins and ends
with the ideals of individual freedom, individual human rights and individual human happiness.
These remain central to the crced whatever may be the econoinic and political arrangements
of liberal democracy society'. According to Heatcr, 'liberty is the c~ui~rtessence of libera1'~ s m .
For the liberal, it is tile individual who counts, not society at large or segment of it, for only by
placing priority 011 the rights of tlne individual can freedom be ensured'.
Andrew Hacker in his book Political Theory has distinguished four types of liberalism: namely,
utopian liberalism, frce mai.ket liberalism, democratic liberalism, and reformist liberalism.
On the whole, according, ttohiln, liberalism stands for i) free life as the prime pursuit of
politics, ii) state's task is to eschew coercion and to encourage the conditions for this free life.
Similarly, Barbara Goodwin'in her book UsingPolitical Ideas, lists the following ingredients
of liberalism: i) man ig free, rational, self- improving and autonornous, ii) government is
based on consent and contract, iii) constitutionalism and tlne rule of law, iv) freedom as choice
which includes the right to choose goverlililent from among different representatives, v) equality of
opportunity, vi) social justice based upon merit, and vii) tolerance.
In short, Iiberalis~nhas a narrow and a broad perspective. At a narrow level, it is seen from
political and economic points of view, wl~ereasat the broader level, it is like a mental at~itude
that attempts in the light of its presuppositions to analyse and integrate the varied intellectual,
moral, religious, social, economic and political relationships of human beings. At the social
level, it stands for secularism, freedom in relation to religion and ~norality.It lays stress on the
value of free individual conscious of his capacity for self-expression and unfettered development
ofhis perso~~ality. At the econornic level, it ilriplies the ideal offree trade coupled with internal
freedom of production. At the political level, it stands for political liberty and the right to
property, conslitutional limired government, protection of 1.he rights of the individual and
anti-authoritariat~ism.
i) a belief in the absolute value of human personality and spiritual equality ofthe individual;
iv) a belief in certain inalienable rights of the individual, pal-titularly, the rights of life,
liberty and property;
v) that state comes into existence by m~ttualconsent for the purpose of protection of rights;
vi) that the relationship between the state and the individual is a contractual one;
vii) that social cc.~ltrolcask best be secured by law ratller than command;
viii) itldividual fiecdc-m in all splleres aF life - political, economic, social, ir~tellectualand
religious;
The social structure of the middle ages was based on the hereditary principle of feud a 1'ism.
The pal-ticular feature of which was that everybody had a master above him: the peasant had
the landlord, the landlord liad the feudal lord, the feudal lord had the king, the Icing had the Pope,
and the Pope had Christ above llin~.The Reformati011Movement broke the authority of the
church. The revival of conimel-ceand the creation of new forms oSweahh began to cl~allenge
the ascendancy of the nobility and the demand for political and social reforms that would
i~liprovetheir status and their business, freedom from restrictions such as the medieval notion
of just price, from the condemriatiorz of lending and borrowing money at interest, and from
taxes that constituted barriers to free trade. The rise and growth of towns and of a new social
class, revival of literature and art, birth of f nod ern science and pliilosophy and the rise oi' large
centralized states created a new epoch. The nledieval ages were based on the privileges of a
few in wliicli individual liberty, rights, equality etc were totally absent. The birth of the modern
period starts wit11 the protest against this absolute and privileged authority, a kind of protest
which was prevalent in all spheres of life and wllicli challenged all Lhe restrictions and
emphasized the autonomy of the individual, his liberty and his rationality. 'The protest expressed
itself in the for111 o;F seci~larislnagainst religious fi~ndamentalism,free market capitalism irr
the field of economics, a government based upon consent in the field of politics, and
individualisln and hunzanism in the field of sociology.
At the core of classicnl I iberalis~nwas the liberty of the individual - liberty fro111every form
of authority which acts arbitrarily and capriciously, and liberty in all spheses of huinan Iifii,
But what is important to note is that liberty here was viewed as a negative thing i.e. liberty as
absence ofrestrrzintu. Only the individual Icnows what is best for him. For the developn~entof
his pcrsoizalit.y, he reqi~iresckrtain freedoms from arbitrary authorities which act against his
will. It was liberty both from the society and from the state. It was 'liberty fiorn' and not
"liberty to'. tlobbes describes it as the 'silence of laws'. Berlin defines it as 'abse~lceof
coercion'. Milton Friedman tenns it as 'absence of coercion of mall by state, society or his
fellowmen'. Flew defines it as absence 0.f 'social and legal constraints'. According to Nozic,
it is a natural right to 'self-ownerqhip'. Again, absence of restraints had very wide meaning.
Restraints could be political, econotnic, civil, personal etc. The purpose of law was not to take
away liberty, but to regulate it. Law and liberty were considered anti-thetical.
Since tlze individual was talcen as a unit and tlze single human being as a natural urzit, classicaI
liberalis~nviewed society not as a natural, but an crrtificial institution. It was seen as being
co~nposedof atom lilce auto~~omous iridividuals with wills and interests peculiar to themselves.
Society was an artificial institution meant to serve certain interests of the individuals. It was
a11 aggregate of individuals, a collection, a crowd wlzere each was pursi~i~lg his own self
interest. Hobbes compared society with a sack ofcorn. 'They are associate, yet separate. Bentl~atn
also viewed society as a fictitious body, with 110 interest of its own. apart from the interests of
members co~nposingit. It was considered a creation ofthe individual will based upon contract
and a means to enrich ' itzdividual ends'. Macpherson lzas termed this view of society as a 'free
market society', a meeting place of self-interested individuals, a society based upoil free will,
colnpetition and contract. A good society was that which guaralzteed t11e liberty ofthe individual
to maximize the self and its freedom of action. Society was a means with individual "as'an end;
it had no necessary unity, no separate interest and existence of its own apart from the individual
interests. It was a free or open society.
This new science of political economy conceived by physiocrats culniinated in the classical
eco~iomicIiberalisln of Adam Smith and was supplemented by Ricardo, Malthus, James Mill
and otliers. The physiocrats believed that if individuals were teft alone to follow their
eniiglitened self-interest, ecot~olnicprosperity would result. Likewise, Adam Slnittl believed
that 'natural economic institutions were not merely good, they were providential. Divine
providence has endowed man with adesire to better his own conditioll.. .so that mall following
where this desire leads is really accomplishing the beneficent designs of God H i ~ n s e l fSrnith
.
discovered that self-interest and benevolence were in a pre-established and harmonious accord.
By seelting one's own interest, one promotes by some mysterious process the welfare of all.
There is no conflict between the individual self-interest and social welfare. 'Every lnnn as
long as lie does not violate the laws ofjustice, ought to be left perfectly fiee to pursue his own
interests in his own way and to bring both his industry and capital into coinpetition with those
of any other nian or order of men'. Accordingly, Smith restricted the activilies of the state to
the bare minin-~umsuch as security of life, limb and property of the individual and some
pilblic works.
The individual right to private.praperty was central to the economic theory of classical Iiberalisni
i.e. the right to freely own or dispose of; to buy or sell, to hire labour and make profit, Free
trade, free contract, competition, free economy, free lnarlcet and ~nnrketsociety, natural right
to private property were the liallniarks of this theory, It was based on the assumption that
econoinics and politics are ~nutuallyindependent or are only indirectly related through
individual psychology. It believed that if tlie individual is left alone to follow his own
enlightened self-interest, economic prosperity would result
The perfect institution for the e.xchange of goods and services was tlle market. The niarket
perfectly embodied the new economic individualism. Market relations abolished the traditional
constraints on fieedom 'to raise and invest capital, to fund loan and earn interest, sell property
and reap profit, hire and fire labour'. The state was not suited to the management of economic
affairs. As Adam Smith wrote 'no two cl~aractersseem more inconsistent than those of trader
and sovereign'. Similarly, Bentham also believed in the self-regulating uncontrolledecono~ny
in which the state had virtually no role to play. In the name of utilitarianisin, he derpanded
free trade, fi-eedorn of occupation, unrestricted competition, inviolable private property and
other individualist reforms. Thus, in the economic sphere, liberalism gave the pure econon~ic
theory of capitalist advance and the theory served we1 I the economic interests of the bourgeoisie.
As Laski writes, 'the wllole ethos of capitalisl~i,in a word, is its effort to fsee the owner of the
instruments of production fro111the need to obey rules which inhibit his full exploitation of
them. The rise of liberalism is the rise oFa doctrine which seelcs to justify the operation ofthat
ethos'.
At tlie political level, liberalism sought to erect a theory of state based tip011 the subjective
clainls of the individual rather than upon objective rcality. The only basis of civil society
which early classical liberalism could conceive was contract or an agreement bctween the
individual and the statc. The contract theory had three inter-related elements: i) the state is not
created by Cod, but is the creation of ~ i ~ aii) n , it is not a natural institution, but an artificial
institutio~land iii) the basis ofthe state and political obligation is thc consent ol'thc individuals.
Classical liberalisin did not regard the state as a natural, nccessity arising out of man's needs
and social nature with it purj3ose transcending the s~ib.jc.ctivewills of tlze individual, but us un
artil'iciril institutio~~
Oased upon1 thc cgoistic nature ol'man. 'The state comes irkto existence by
mutual consent for the sole ptrrpose of p~+esel.vi~lg and protecting thc rights ofthe individual
s~ndt l ~ crelationsl~il-,
bctween the state and the individual is a contmctuitl one. When the terms
of the contract are violated, individuals not only have the riglit, but also tlic respotlsibility tu
revolt and establish a rrew government. Through the notion of consent, liberalistn tried to
sz~feguardthe rights and liberties of the people and check the arbitrariness ofthe rulers. Consent
was also ~iladca precondition of the state, because liberalism believed that tile authority of tlie
state was a restraint LIPOIIindividual freedom and it should be checked as far as possible.
lnspite of being the crcation of man, classical liberalism saw the state in purely negative
Lerms. It was termed as a necessary evil. It was necessary because only it coi~ldprovide law,
order, security of life and property, but it was an evil also because it was an enemy ofhuman
liberty. Since liberalism considered the rights and liberties of the individual as sacred, any
increase in the functions of the state was seen as a decrease in the liberty of the individrral.
Hence, tlie state was seen as having n negative fitnction; to provide security of life and property
and Ieavc tlie individual lYee to pursue llis good in his own way The philosophy ofthe state as
a necessasy evil and the self- regulating econo~npleft a very limited role for the government.
T'lie liberal slogan was 'that government is the best which governs the least'. T o illustrate this
point further, Ada111Smith restricted the fu~ictionsof the state to: i) 'protect the society from
violelice and invasion, ii) protect every lne~nberof society f'som injustice and oppression of
every other member and iii) to erect and maintain certain p~iblil:worlcs and certain public
institutions'in which the individual may not be interested because it wo~lldbe unprofitable'.
Similarly, Willian~Senior wrote "the esse~itialbusiness of government is to afford defence, to
protect the comn~unityagainst foreign and dolnestic violence and fraud'. Bentliam reduced
tlie task of the government to security and fseedom. Another writer Thomas Paine said 'while
society in any state is a blessing, government even in its best state is but a necessary evil'.
Herbert Spencer advocated the doctrine of s~~rvival of the fittest and pleaded that the state
should have a minimum role in the socio- economic sphere.
As a political theory, liberalism can be traced to the political thought of Thomas Hobbes, but
its clear expression was found in the thought of John Locke. Locke declared that no one can
be subjected to the political power of another without his own consent. For him, freedom
meant fi-eedom from the state. State and government were deemed as restrictive institutions.
Locke propounded a theory of natural rights - of life, liberty and property- for the protection
of which the state comes into being. He conceived rights as prior to the state. The basis ofthe
state is a contract which the ruler or the ruled can get rid of. Government is the result of
individual will, civil society is sovereign and the state is an artificial institution created for
certain specific ends like order, security, protection of the rights of life, liberty and property.
State was given a very limited sphere of action, namely, eslablishrnent of law and order,
suppression of violence, protection of rights and property. The American and French revolutions
of the eighteenth century were largely influenced by liberal ideology. Like Locke, Thomas
Paine also denied that the state has unlimited absolute power and asserted the political liberty
ofthe co~ntnunityand the defence ofthe individual against the possible tyranny ofthe monarch.
Si~nilarly,Montesquieu endeavottredlto do for France what Locke had done for England in
the seventeenth century as a liberal; his first concenl was individual freedom and he
endeavoured to discover checks on political authority by means of which it might be secured.
To this end, lie developed a theory of the separation of powers which had a far reaching
influe~~ce.
The nineteenth centilry produced a group ofwriters called philosophical radicals like Bentham,
Janies Mill and J.S. Mill. The doctrine they propounded is known as 'Utilitarianis~n'wliicli
dominated liberal thought for more than half a century. Utilitarianism provided a new theoretical
foundation to.li beral ism. It was based upon the theory of hedonism. It means that all Inen seek
pleasure and avoid pain. Pleasl~reis tlie only thing desirable in and for itself. Wealth, position.
power, health and even virtue itself is desired ~~ierely
as a means to the t~lti~nateend of pleasure.
What gives pleasure is utility and is desirable and what gives pain does not have utility and is
avoided. In his opening paragraph of his Introdiiction lo the Principles of Morals and
Legi.slrrliol7, Benthati1 wrote. Wat~trehas placed niankind under the governance of two sovereign
masters, pain atid pleasure. It is for them alone to point out what we ought to do as well as to
detenliine what we shall doY.However, all happiness being impossible, man lnust seek the
greatest happiness in terms of quantity. Similarly, the greatest happiness of all the people
being impossible, we must seek the greatest happiness of the greatest number. Bentham applied
the pririciple and nzethods o f utility to the spheres of'law, politics and the state.
For Bentliam. state is an instrument deviscci by nIan to satisfy his desires and reflects his will.
Tlie sole justification for it is that it provides peace, order, security and helps them to satisfy
these desires. It is a nleans to promote happiness ofthe individual. Utility in the context of the
state is expressed thro~ighlaw. It is law wliicli unites people together and pirts them on tlie
road of utility. Benthaln considered law as an importnnt instr~~tnent o r expression of ~~tility
and regarded legislation as the only device tllro~~gh wliicll i~tilitycoitld be attained. Hence, he
considered the state as a law making body because it is only through law that the state rewards
or punishes so as to increase happiness and decrease pain. The pirrpose of law is to regulate
the motive ofself- interest. Mere lnorality is not si~fficientnncl i~nlcsslaw comes into operation,
bad things cannot be out of place. Benthall1 believed in tlie co~nmandtheory of law and
regarded it as the coni~nandof the sovereign. The sovereign is the source of law. All inen are
equal in the eyes of law and all have equal rights as regards the prolnotion of happiness. But
inspite of the fact tliat the state is an instrument to promote happiness of the individ~aal,the
character of the state, according to Bentliam, remains negative. Believing that men are moved
by their self interest and everybody is the best judge of his pleasure or pain. Bentham carme to
the conclusion tliat the 'main function ofthe state was to remove all the institutional restrictions
on tlie kce action of the individual.. . the purpose of the state is not to fbster and promote but
only to restrain them from indulging in activities wliich affect the general l~appinessby
punishing them'. To increase the national wealth, ri~eans,ofsi~bsistenceand enjoyment, tlze
general rule is that to achieve the greatest happiness of the greatest ntrrnber, 'nothing should
be done or attempted by the government'. Rcntl~ainreduced the f~~nctions of the stale only to
security and freedom. In other words, to promote the happiness of tlie individual, the state is
a negative institution; sim~~ltaneously, along-with conceiving the state,as an instrument of
promoting security and licedoni'. Bentliam foremw the need and aspirations of the nod ern
den~ocraticstate. I-ie prcferreci tlie detnocratic tbrm of' government because a represetltative
democracy was more likely to secure the greatest happiness ofthe greatest number by,ado'pting
constit~itionaldevices like suffrage, annual parliaments, vote by ballot, election of prime
~ninisterby the parliament and the appointment of civil servants t h r o ~ ~ gcompetitive
h
exatninations. Also, he favo~~red the unicameral legislature, vote by secret ballot, recaIl of
p~~lslicofficials, civil and criminal code and prison refornis. TI~esecontributions went a long
way in the develop~l~cnt of the liberal perspective of the state.
'The tradition ofclassical liberalism was further exte~idedby Bentham's pupil J.S. Mi31. Mill's
essay 0 1 1 Libcrlj? (1859) which has long been held to be the finest and the most moving essay
on liberty is a powerfirl and a11eloquel~tplea for liberty of thoi~ght,liberty of exprssion and
liberty of action not merely against the interfcrcnce of the state, but also against the pressure
of society, public opinion and conventions in the affairs of the individual. The liberty he
sought to defend was the liberty ofthe individual to develop, enrich and expand his personality.
As such it is not surprising that he pleads that the individual should be lei1 free to realize his
own intcrest the way he likes, provided he does not interfere with tlie si~nilarfreedom of
others. He defines liberty as 'pursuing our own good in our owti way so long as wc do not
attempt to dcprivc others ol'their or impede their efforts to obtain it'. So defined liberty is a
rneans to an end, the cnd being one's own good. I-le firrther writes 'the only part ofthe conduct
ofany onc for which he is a~nenableto society is that which concerns others. In the part w1iicl.r
merely concerns himself, his independence is, of' right, absolute. Over himself, over his body
and niind, the individual is sovereign.. .the only purpose for which power can be rightfully
exercised, over any rnembcr of the civilized comln~~nity against his will is to preveiit harm to
otlters'.
Mill divided the activities of the individual into two parts: self-regarding and other-regarding.
The self-regarding action niay include those 11iatterswhich affect the individual himself, having
no concern with others. While the individual was to be free in doing those things which
affected I~i~nselfalone, his independence was restricted in tlipse caseswhich had a bearing on
others. Society has 110 right to use force or conipitlsion in regard to matters which affect the
individual alone arid have no concern with others. In tlic self-regarding functions, Mill incli~ded
(i) the inward domain of consciousness demanding liberty of conscience in the most
coniprel~ensivesense, I iberty ofthought and feeling; absolute fi-eedornofopinion and sentiment
on all subjects practical or speculative, scientific moral or tl~eological;(ii) liberty of tastes and
pursuits, of framing a plan of our life to suit our own character, of doing things without
impedirile~itsfrom other fellow creatures so long as they do not harm others, (iii) liberty of
combi~iaeionamong individuals; freedom to unite for any purpose not involving harm to others.
We can conclude this discussion on classical liberalism by rlie views of L.'T'. Elobouse. In his
book Liberalism, Hobhouse pointed out certain basic principles sf' liberalism. According to
him, these principles were evolved as a consequence of tlie struggle of the rising middle class
against feudal ism, aristoclats and clergymen. In short, these principleswere: i) Personal liberty:
the essence of liberalisni lies in individual liberty. This doctrine covered scveral rights and
duties of tlie individual. It was to secure freedom of speech, discussion, writing, freedom of
thought and faith. The Aluerican Declaration of Independence, the El~glisl~ Rill of Rights and
tlie I-labeas Corpus Act, the petition of rights were all meant to secure these freedoms. Personal
liberty also meant that there should be no discrilnination on grounds of caste, coiour, creed,
sex, race and economic position. ii) Civil liberty: according to this principle, the government
nus st be conducted not by the.arbitrary will of any one individual or class but by law. 'This was
necessary to counteract the evil of oppression of the Icings or feudal lords and churchmen.
Milton's libertarian doctrine declared that all hurna~ibeings are by nature born fiee and endowed
with reason and the riglit to work.out their own destiny arid that the rulers must ~xescisetheir
authority under the restraints of law. Similar was the declaration of Jefferson that 'all men are
elldowed by their Creator witli certain inalienable rights to secure far which governtnents are
instituted' arid which appears substantially as an expression of tlie first principle of 1iberalis~n;
iii) Econornic liberty: it nieant that the individual shot~ldI~avethe right to property and contact.
This fieeci tlic individual from econornic restraints and economic liberty for classical liberalisln
was the acceptance of the pol icy of laissez faire which meant tliat the state should intervene as
little as possible in the econornic affairs; iv) Political liberty and popular sovereignty: they
mean that all inen S I I O ' U I ~have rigl~tsand all milst be enabled to enjoy equal opportunities.
These two concepts were described by Mobl>oi~se as the crown and glory of liberalism. The
doctrine of popular sovereignty was stressed by tlie Declaration of Independence in .America.
It Inearit sovereigtity of the people, it vested in then1 the supreme power of political decision
and action. Concepts of political freedom and popular sovereignty led to mafiy far reaching
consequences and formation of principles such as universal suffrage, direct election of public
officials, public accountability ofgovernors, annual parliaments, subordination ofthe executive
to tlie legislature; v) and last but not the least, classical liberalism also included domestic
freedom, administrative and racial liberty and international liberty. It was opposed to. the use
of force RS 311instrument of national policy or iriilitarisln. It was primarily because capitalism
needed peace and international cooperation for the free flow of goods from one country to
another and hence, it pleaded for the renioval of all qoli[ical and other barriers which stood in
tlie way of cflycient exploitation of world resources.
i) An Amorphous Ideology
To criticize liberalism is not to belittle its historical importance and conlribution. During the
past 400 years, liberalisni has given naany humanistic and democratic ideas and almost all the
issues of niodern westcrn philosophy have been connected with liberalisan in one way or the
other. It has been the mainstream of western socio-econotnic and political philosophy.
Liberalism has given progressive slogans like libcrty, equality, hternity, natural and inalienable
rights of man, de~iiocracy,development of human personality etc and it has vigorously fought
against the orthodoxies represented by monarchy, papacy and the feudal socio-economic order.
In the beginning, as the plailosophy of tlie revolutionary bourgeoisie class, libcralis~nguided
many revolutionary stn~ggles,against the feudal order. Its ccono~nicphilosophy played an
important role in tlie industrial development ofthe west, its soci:il philosophy Eielped in thc
establisli~iaentof an open market society, its political philosophy pavcd the way for liberal
democracy, its ethical philosophy led to the triumph of indiviclualisn~,and its promoted
seciilarislii in all walks of social life. Classical liberalism freed tht: ildividunl frorn traditional
authorities and the state, and maintained that political powcr is the trust ofthe people. However,
during tlie later half of the 19th century, a number of contradictions bcgari to emerge in the
face of ~narxistchallenge and gradually, classical liberalism was replaced by welfare (or
posilive) liberalism. But \we continue to need liberalisni, thougll it may not be enough. The
drift towards autfzoritarianis~a~ and the decay in civil liberties, the increase in police powers
and the curtail~nentofriglats are developments underlying the fragility of liberal achievements
even in its traditional heartlands and make a tima commitment to the best of liberal values and
institutions all tlie more necessary.
15.7 SUMMARY
Liberalism is the dominant ideology of the present-day westenr world. It was tht: product of
the climate of opinion that merged in the context of renaissance, reformation and industrial
revol~ttionin England and Euroyie. Classical liberalism has been enriched by a host ofthinkers,
prominent among whom are Thomas I-Iobbes, John Locke, Adam Smith, Malthus, Richardo,
Bentliam, James Mill, Herbert Spencer, William Senior and Tliornas Paine.
Classical liberalism had faith in the absolute value and worth and spiritual equality of the
individual.
It believecl in the masterless individual, in theautonorny ofthe individual will and the rationality
:,:nd goodness of thc: individual..
The individual milst have freedom in all spheres: political, social, cultural, economic, moral
i ntellecti~al,spiritual etc. Freedom meant absence of restraints or freedom from all such
autl~oritieswhich could act arbitrarily or capriciously,
It believed in the inalienable rights of the individual. Jt cherished the rights of life, liberty and
property as natural rights, riot at the mercy of either state or society
It supported free economy, free trade, contract, exchange and competition. It opposed state
interference in the economy,
It considered the state as an artificial institution. It is the creation of man and is based upon
social contract. The relationship between the state and the individual is contractual and if the
state violates the contract, revolution against the state (government) is the duty ofthe individual,
The state, in spite of being the creation of man, is, necessarily an evil; its role is purely
negative i.e. to maintain law and order, protect the rights of the individual and leave the
individual free 'to pursue his own good in his own way'.
15.8 EXERCISES
I) Explain the concept and characteristics of liberalism.
1 G.1 Introduction
16.2 Evolution of Positive Liberalism
16.3 Liberal Democratic Welfare State
16.3.1 Welfare State is a Positive State
16.3.2 Welfare State is Delllocratic
16.3.3 Welfare State Relieves in a Mixed Economy
16.3.4 Welfare State is a Permanent Institiltion of Society and a Neutral Agency
16.4 Justification of the Welfare State
16.4.1 State and the Market
16.4.2 Individualist
16.4.3 Enhances Individual Liberty
16.4.4 Equality
16.4.5 Rights
16.4.6 Citizensllip
16.4.7 Justice
16.5 Welfare State: Contelnporary Detjate
16.6 Crisis in tile Welfare State : A.n Assessment
16.7 Su~nlnary
I G.8 Exel-cises
16.1 INTRODUCTION
The term 'welfare state' describes collectively a range of social policies that aim to provide
basic services such as health and education, according to the need and norlnally, free of charge
tl~roi~ghstate Cunding. It is sometinies extended more loosely to areas such as social security
in which individuals are legally required to make substantial contributions in order to receive
the benefits. Thc thcory of welfare state is the basis ofpositive liberalistn. It is a sk~rtof state,
which provides extensive social services to all the citizens, protects the weaker sections,
provides ccononiic and social security and tries to reduce the gap between the rich and the
poor. It makes laws to control the econorny, natiot~alizesindustries, makes laws to protect the
weaker sections, arranges the supply of essential commodities, maintains essential services
and through progressive taxation and income redistribution, tries to reduce the gap bctween
thc rich and the poor and thereby, harmonizes the different interests in society.
The existence of some form of we1 are is now accepted across most of the political spectrum.
d
Flowever, of late. the concept o f w I f a state
~ has been radically challenged by the libertarians
for whom it represents a violation of the rights of those who are taxed to provide its funding.
?he major point of debate is, whether it sl~ouldbe regarded as a safety net establishing a
niinimum level o f welfare beneath whicli no one is allowed to fall or as an agency of
redistribution froin the rich to the poor fostering greater social equality. Otllers have also
questioned the strength of the welfare state; i.e. does it ensure the citizens the necessary
income to fight insecurities and enable them to lead a stable. dignified civilized life? Does it
remove inequalities of real income? Does the welfare state ilslier a trend where private sector
be curbed, crippled and made powerless? Has the welfare state been able to fiee the econoniy
from ~ O O I ~ I Sdepressions,
, inflation and other ecoiiorniccrises? Tlie contemporary crisis in the
welfare state has give11a boost to classical liberalis~nin the new garb of liber-tarianisn~.We
shall try to answer these questions in this unit
A thor~i~gi~goi~tgrevision of liberal theory required a re- examination ofthe nature and f~lnctions
ofthe state, the nature of liberty and tlie relationship between Liberty and autl~ority.Such a rc-
examination also vpened tlie question of the relationship between individual human nature
and itsrelations with society because the old notions such as self-interest, pleasure and utility
proved less convincing. 'This revision is known as 'Positive Liberalism' and was carried out
by J.S. Mill, T.1-I. Green. D.G. Ritchic in the nineteenth century and I-lobson, Hobhouse,
Lindsay, G.D.M. Cole, Barker, Laski, Keynes, MacIver and Galbraith in the twentieth century.
.I.S. Mill's ideas of liberalism depart li.om those orthe classical model in four ways. Firstly,
he opined that the value of the personality of the individual can be realized in the actual
conditions of a free society. secondly, he accepted political and social freedom as good in
themselves. To live one's own life, developing one's own native traits and capacities is not
only a means to I~appiness,but a substantive part of happiness itself. A good society is one
which permits both freedom and opens up the opportunity for a free and satisfying way of life.
Third, liberty is not an individual good, but a social good. And fourth, the fi~nctiono f a liberal
state in a free sociely is not to leave the individual alone, but also to act a s a means of creating
increasing and eclualizing opportunity.
T.H. Green brought,about an idealist revision of liberalism. IIe made it abundantly clear that
liberalism could not be placed on narrow foundations. He inferred that at the centre of liberal
philosophy was the idea of the general good or cornmon human well-being which is capable
of being shared by everyone and which provided a standard for legislation. This standard
coilld not be individual liberty alone. Choice means opportunity and opportunity means a
society that is not coercive b e y ~ n dneed, either in its legal and political structure or in its
economic and social structure.
Green did not claim that legislation could in itself pronlote moral good~zess;nevertheless in
many situations, legislative intervention alone could bring into existence conditio~~s in whicll
inen coilld exercise frccly t!acir faci~ltieaof moral judgement, enlarging the area of"positive
freedom'. Si~nilarly,Busanqwet in his book The Philo.sophiccr1 Theory of Stute rcjectcd the
negative concept of liberty and contended that the fundamental concept of a genuine and
social philosophy I I I L ~be
S ~based upon an idea that the assertion and maximization of sclf and
individuality becomes possible and real in and tllrougt~society. The end of the slate lies in
ensuring conditions for good life; these conditions are rights arising out of man's moral being
which the stati: seclcs to promote. It is the higher sense of liberty since it presents 'the greatcr
area to activity and the more extensive choice to self -determination... '
At the beginning of the twentieth century, liberalism was concerned wit11 several allied problen~s
in [he context of developing capitalism; namely, to seek a theoretical justification for continued
state action for the pl-omotion of' social welfare, to integrate socialis~ninto the frame of
liberalism. This was achieved by writers like Laslci, Keynes, Barlcer etc. For example, Laslci
wrote, 'liberty is the power of adding something to c o m m o ~life,~ a contribution which can
only be made if i) there are certain specific conditions that enable the individual to make the
contribution, and ii) that institutional obstacles are not in his way" The state as an agency of
the co~nrnurlityand not of any one section of it, has throi~ghthe guarantee o f rights, ensured
the forrner and through regulating legislation, re~novcdthe latter. E-Iowever,during the i~lterwar
years, whe~ithe organic theory'of state was abused by the fascist leaders, the neo-liberals
were quick to explain the just limits ofthe state- the prolnotio11of the welfare ofthe individual.
The state was seen at best as adjustor, and a coordinator and the authority exercised by it as
morally valid only if it seeks to promote liberty, For this, tlie liberals maintained, the
organization of authority n ~ u sbe
t democratic, the only form ofpolity consistent with the view
of liberty. The democratic polity is to secure fundamental liberties of individuals, to secure a
wider area of autonomy for the vast number of voluntary associations through which the
citizens realise their several ends and to secure institutional checks against a possible abuse of
power.
During 1929-33, the liberal capitalist state had to face a worldwide economic depression as a
result of which the capitalist economy was completely shattered. To cope with the problem of
hunger and mass unemployment, liberalism was compelled to re-evaluate its capitalist
foundations. To resolve the incompatibility of 'free society and a relatively stable capitalist
economy', J.M. Keynes working within the capitalist tradition went further than any other
liberal writer. His conclusion was that there is an inherent imbalance within the capitalist
economy. As capitalism matures, this imbalance increases and the concentration of capital
reaches a limit where profitable investment becomes impossible. This leads to economic
crises leading to mass uneinployment. To control trade cycles, Keynes argued for the direct
interference of the state so that capital investment could be made, which would, in turn, fill
the gap between production and consumption, keep the industry working and will eliminate
large scale unemployment. To save liberalism and capitalisn~,Keynes felt that 'the state should
have control over the capitalist economy and the rates of savings, Investments, profit, taxation
rate and wages were the state subjects. He did not agree with the anti-thesis between capitalism
and socialism and thereby, a.lso.rejected the anti-thesis between the individual and the state.
This marked not the end, but the enlargement ofthe fundamental liberal conception of liberty.
After the Second World Wir, how the problems arising out of the war made the interference
of the state all the more necessary was reflected the works of John Ga1brial.h. In his books The
Afjuent Society and 17ze New Industrial Stcrte, he argued for getting rid of conventional wisdom
i.e. classical Iiberalism and adopt socialist methods, devoid of ideology. He suggested certain
socialist measures for the welfare of capitalist societies and warned the developed countries
that if they wanted to get rid ofthe recurring economic crises, then the interference of the state
in the economic field will have Lo be welcomed.
In ort, positive liberalism as it evolved during the later half of the 19th and the first half of the
&
20 centuries could be distinguished korn classical negative liberalism in many' ways.
Firstly,although it continued to retain faith in the autonomy, rights and liberty of the individual,
now it believed that inan is a part of the social whole and the liberties could be secured only
so long as they could be rec&~ciledwith the social good. Society was considered 'a potential
harmonious and ordered structure in which all social classes worK for the common good'.
Society has its own interest, it'has ethical and moral dimensions and the individual good
cannot be achieved without social good. Secondly, liberty, like justice and equality, is not an
empty social ideal, but deri vas its specific content from a particular socia) and historical milieu
in which it has to be understood. Liberty in the society implied adjustment of mutual claims
that are made possible through a system or rights which are both restraints and liberties.
'Liberty was not merely the absence of restraints, but conditions necessary for free and full
development of the Blf which a state, true to its own moral purpose must en&.u-e'. 'Liberty
Si
through compulsion' though a paradox was justified as practically valid. Only on this ground
it justified social and welPdre legislation, Also, liberty implied equality. Equality provided the
basis through which liberty comes to acquire a positive meaning. Liberty and equality are
complementary. Equality is not only equaIity before law or mere equality of opportunity or of
being treated as a human being, but also economic equality commensurable with political
liberty - a modification through state action of the excessive disparities of wealth and of
opportunity that follow. ThirdZy, positive liberalism believed in regulated capitalist economy,
in the overall interest of society. The state could check the individual capitalist, through
economic and social reforms, the conditions of the working class could be improved; poverty,
illiteracy, unemployment and exploitation could be checked. The gap between the rich and
the poor could be bridged through the positive action of the state. Fourthly, at the political
level, positive liberalism depended upon the proposition that the sense of public good or
general welfare is an effective motive of politics. The state is an instrument for the development
of human personality through welfare n~easures.The state has a positive character and is
capable of performing socially useful functions. The institutional arrangements for achieving
the good of the individual and the society are democracy, representative government,
constit~~tionalism, parliamentary methods, universal franchise, party organization. The liberal
government is one which protects the rights of the individual as well as of the community.
The state is to coordinate di$fferentinterests and classes in society. It does not belong to a
partiiular class, but to the society as a whole.
In the field of social security, protection against want, sickness and old age is not only demanded
by humanitarian considerations, but can also be justified on economic grounds since a minimum
standard of living guaranteed by social security provides people with a minimum purchasing
power which is indispensable to the operation of industry in prosperity and depression.
Collective bargaining between labour and management is another basic contribution towards
a more stable and prosperous ecol;omy because higher wages - provided they are based on
higher productivity and not on organized extortion - create a bigger market for the products
of industry and agriculture.
Through the instrument o f welfare, positive liberalism used the power of the state to modify
the play of market forces in at least three directions: i) by guaranteeing individuals and families
a ~nininiumincome irrespective ofthe marltet value of their work or property, ii) by narrowing
the content of insecurity by enabling individuals and families to meet certain social
contingencies such as sickness, old age and unemployment, and iii) by ensuring that all citizens
without distinction of status or class are offered the best available agreed range of social
services. The distinguishing characteristic of tlie welfare state is the assumption by the
conimunity, acting through the state, oftlie responsibility of providing the means whereby all
its members can reach minimuni standard of health, economy and civilized living and can
share, according to tlieir capacity, in its social and cultural heritage. The welfare state has the
following unique features.
'The neo-liberals categorically asserted that the welfare state is a democratic state, possessing
a certain forrnal institutional nnechanisln which is considercd essential in liberal democratic
society. Any state which may be a welfare state, but is not democratic Ikom the institutional
point of view, cannot be regarded a liberal state. Tlie state can be a welfare state only, if it
manifests itselfthrougha formal deriiocratic institutional attire. A state which mcrely undertakes
the task of welfare such as guaranteeing a minimu111incoriie, elimination of insecurity of tlie
individual and the family crises by supplying 'social contingencies' and whicli also tries to
provide a certain range o f services to all, but does not provide a democratic institutional
framework and political arid civil liberties, will not be considered a welfare state. It is on this
ground tliat communisl countries like the former Soviet Union, China and erstwhile East
European countries as well as fascist states like Germany were excluded from the category of
the welfare state. In olher words, the tern1 welfare state is used only for the states of those
capitalist countries whicli undertake the positiveiaslc of providing welfare services and where
the governliient preserves the formal deruocraiic instit~rtionalframework.
'rhc welfare state, positive liberalism mainrains, is an eternal and permanent institution of
society. The state is also a neutral instrument of powcr wllicli can be used for any purpose.
Thc state is run arbiter seeking the good of any society impartially. The ability of the state to
provide cluantity, qi~alityand llle type of welfare depeilds i ~ p otlie
~ i groups wlio wield the state
power. 'She pwsunnel of thc government c o ~ ~ be l d clianged by the will of the people through
i~niversnlst11li.age.'T'i~eslate does not belong to a particular class. It tries to intervene in the
economy positively and ~-cshape it in sucli n nianticr that 3 minimum of social living is created
lbr all the citizens irrespective of the st:~tus arrd CI;ISS positi~llO F citizens in the society. r25
Titmus pointed out, 'it was incrcasirigly regarded as a proper function of governnzent to ward
of distress and strail) among not olily the poor, but alrnost all classes of society'.
In short, positive liberalis111 considered tlie welfare statc as a new kind of state which is
democratic in for11-1;which tlioilgh considering 'profit oriented market econorny' as desirable,
seeks to regulate or streaniline it to serve social needs and thereby, PI-ovidesocial welfare to
the citizens. It is a state whicli lias evolved froni the laissezfaire state by a process of increased
inlerference in the operation oftlie liiarlcet economy 31.vrtrious levels and by gradually regulating
the power ol'capital. It is a state in which political power is increasingly' used to free the
people iioni tlie tyranny of capital assuring them a certain standard of welfare. The welfare
a~~tenitiesare not restricted to a specific group, but belong to the society as a whole.
The birth of the modern theory of welfare depended on the reinterpretation of certain key
political concepts; notably liberty, equality and justice. Their net effect was to transform the
rlature of society from a conception of loosely associated individuals into a more intimate
form of community. It was argued that if people could be held together by social bonds that
transcended contractual relationships, then they could make claims on each other as citizens
ofa cornmon enterprise which could exceed their contribution as measured in more calculative
economic terms. State welfare was regarded not as an act of charity, but a form of entitlement.
Simultaneously, the idea of welfare also developed outside the economic sphere. It concentrated
on the need itself, regardless of its cause of a panicular consequence that may flow from
attempts to relieve it. If to this is added the demand for minimum income and redistribution in
the name of social justice, we get the ideal of a citizenship. This is not defined by civil and
political liberties alone, but also include claims to economic resources, not as market determined
rewards for work, but as a consequence of the membership of the community.
lnspite of the fact that the idea of the welfare state became a consensus view in the post-war
period, there was no agreement within liberalism about the theoretical justification for the
welfare state. Different scholars gave different justifications for the welfare state: such as to
correct the ill-effects of fsee trade capitalism, to enhance the liberty ofthe individual, to bring
about an equalitarian society, to establish justice (which of course included social justice), to
implement the citizenship rights etc. Apart from these, there were also moral and altn~istic
justifications. Let us have a Grief look at some of them.
In the literature an social welfare, a dichotomy between the state and the market is shown.
The main criticism against free trade capitalism was that it leads to monopoly capitalism and
an ecor~olnydominated by the power of trusts, combines, cartels, multinationals and trans-
national corporations. This in turn gives rise to a variety of social, eco~~uniic and political
contradictions in society. In the absence of any positive intirference by the state in the political
economy, the exploitation of the working class by an aristocracy of ~nonopolycapitalism
without caring for any social responsibility, une~nploymenton a large scale, inhuman working
conditions in factories, competitive low wages, Iong working hours, poverty, illiteracy and
poor health are bound to result/ Also, free trade capitalist cconomy is the enemy of socio-
economic equality. As was pointed out by Green and Tawney, by denying redistribution of
national wealth through the state, the market fosters inequality and injustice. It was argued
that the old ~nechanismof the market, because they were powered by self-interest, cannot be
sensitive to the welfare needs precisely because they cannot be translated into prices and also
those in need lack the resources to pay the price set by tlle market. As Titlnus said, 'capitalism
is a bioiogical failure; it is prolnoting the extinction of the society'. Though he did not reject
the market, he maintained that it is the cause of those economic misfortunes that render some
people in need of welfare. Sirice market relations are competitive, they must also be divisive.
Society's welfare is not reducible to the individual's experiences ofwellbeing to which he is
entitled to by his own efforts, but consists of a complex amalgam of rational and comrnurial
sentiments. It can be said that the individuals by living in society, in fact, receive 'economic
rent' i.e., the difference between the income they would receive outside society and that
which they actually get becausi of their existence of social co-operation which they do not
directly create. Thus, welfare is a form of compensation drawn from collective resources.
And this task can be performed by the state. The state can ameliorate the conditions under
which people live and work by providing for their health and safety and for their social and
economy security. The state can reshape the economy in such a manner that a ininimuln level
of social living is created for all citizens irrespective of their status and class position in
society.
A sophisticated moral justification for the welfare state was based on individualist grounds. It
believes that the market forces do cause distress and hence, undermine the notion of individual
autonomy. This is inconsistent with the liberal belief in the equal autonomy of each individual
and hence, to restrain from aiding a person in deprivatiori where such action is not excessively
costly is morally harming that person. In other words, welfare is not an act of morality but a
compelling duty. This is embedded in the autonomy of the individual. A person who is fornially
free in the sense of nor being cokrced is not virtually free, iftheir choices do not emanate from
their autonomous will. According to A1bct.t Weale, certain material conditions 'must necessalily
hold for individual to carry out a wide range of projects'. It is not that people make wrong
choices but that in the absence of welfare, some peoples' choices are arbitrarily narrowed. If
liberalism requires the conditions of equal autonomy for individuals and markets fail to provide,
then government action is required to sustain the liberal social order. Similarly, Rslymond
Plant argues that 'basic needs have to be satisfied to do anything at all'. What malces needs
objective is that they are n tlecessary meatis to the achievement of moral autonotny. Again,
whereas wants cannot forni the basis oi'a strict claim on others, needs can. This is because
wllat makes need sntisfactio~iof overriding importance is that the failure to provide for it is
nora ally equivalent to harming someone.
15.4.4 Equality
Along with liberty, the social philosopl~yoi'well'are has been concerned with eqtralify itself,
not tlie justification in rational terms of socially and cl;onomically necessary inequslities or
the identification and elimination of objec'tive needs, but egalilalianisrn for its own sake.
What R.H. Tawney called 'the religion ofincquality' has bee11n construit source of criticism
from welfare philosopl~ers.IIo\vever, the Iiberal wetfare philosophy has never advocated an
unco~npron~ising egalitarianism, but a system in which those legal and political equalities that
classical liberalism had always valued are reflected in the economic;: world to a far greater
extent than is possible in the capitalist rnnrlcct system. Equality has a potent value in welfarisn~.
It is argued that the virtues of exchange relationshipare badiy compron~iscd,if tlrt: participants
in them are separated by gross disparities of wealth. Since in [he capitalist societies, some
entrants to the market \\ill s t x t with an advantage for which perhaps no rational justification
can be given, this inequality will be reflected in the outcome and the results itself. 'The market
instead of being an arena of expanding opportunities will become a source of inequalities.
There is a persistent question: why sl~ouldthe value of equality have the signilica~lceit
traditionally had in the philosophy of welfare? This is because all societies seem to exhibit
pretty regular inegalitarian featirrcs which see111 more or less irnperviuus to significant
correction by political methods. Modern legal and political inequalities are not ncco~npanied
by ecoiiolnic equality. Wealth can buy political power in defiance of merely formal equal
rules of the liberal system. Inspite of the disappointing results of equalitnrianis~nthe welfare
theorists feel that there is still a moral obligation to promote welfare through egalitarian
measures where this would not have such a11adverse effect on the output of the economy that
the worst off would suffer. Not to take action in such circun~stanceswould be to accept the
level of economic inequality, which itself has adverse or welfare reducing effect on the rest of
the society.
16.4.5 Rights
Some tlieorists have justified the welfare state in tlic context of 'rights'. According to H.L.A.
Hart, rights iniply a special congruity in the use of force or threat of force to secure that what
is just or fair or someone's right to havc done shall in fact be done. It is only in these
circu~nstancesthat coercion of another human being is legitimate. If there are any welfare
rights, then it can only be so if coercion can be justified in the redistribution of resources than
their possession necessitates. Welfare is not justified in terms of benevolence, but is a feature
of entitlenient or justice. However. this could have two implications for the welfare theory: i)
welfare rights would be syrnmetrical with the faniiliar negative rights (i.e., right to forbearance
fsom aggressive action on tlie part of others), and ii) it would provide that the very existence
of welfare rights enforceable as law encourages peopic to adjust their behaviour accordingly,
i.e. become welfare rights' claimants. I-Iowever, the critics claimed that there is no exact
symmetry between tlle negative and positive rights, since the latter are indeterminate as well
as not fu'ully justifiable.
16.4.6 Citizenship
Because of the ob-jections raised against the rights theory, welfare state now grafts on the
,
notion of rights as a Lhcorjj ofcitizenship. This has tlie advantage of limiting the applicability
ofwelfare clai~nsto particular communities ancl the theoretical one of establishing the identity
of persons not by their capacity to cltoose, but by tiicir rnembershil:,of the collective community.
~
,!
Citizenship as a foundation for welfare is a little less ambitio1.r~.It si111p1y nlaintains that
clailns to resources are an extension fi.011~ the legal and political rigl~tsthat have emerged in
the development of liberal deniocracy. 'T.14.Marshall specifically placed the economic aspect
ofcitizensliip in an evolutionary account of the development of liberal democracy. 'hlking in
tlie context ol' British society, Marshall identified thrce catcgories of citizenship rights: i)
legal -which embraced tlie traditional rights to free expressio~i,property, equality before law
and the fa~iiiliarcivil liberties; ii) political --which covcrcd the political rights in a democracy,
and iii) social -the welfi~rerights wliicl~give a person certain entitlement to resources. Social
citizenship was an attempt to.refo'onn capitalism tliro~tgl~ legislation. The gradual development
of universal provisions for basic education, health and social security were attempts to change
the nature of cash nexus between the capital and Iabonr. Legislati011on minimum wages,
hours of work, emplny~i~ent of children, working conditions, occupational safety and
compensation of occupational acciderrts niade tlic cniployees less vulnerable to the capitalist
class. The state through positive intervention ancl by refor~nufatingits taxation and expenditi~re
policies is able to resolve tile conflicts between the two. Tlic)ugli the creation of social citizenship
did not remove class irleylralitics, nor was it able to hndamentally transform tlie economic
basis of capi tal ism. still through the welfare siatc it was able to reduce ce~Tainsocial inequalities,
especially thosc associated wit11 the operation ofthe marlcet. 'The rational for citizenship lies
-
., .
in its capacity for tlie integration of all individiials into a society; for instance the prcscnce of' ,
econo~riicrights that pertain to citizenship prevent class conflict ptting .outof Iiat~d'.Citizenship
'imposcd modifications on the class.' Though Marshall was not opposed to the market, he did
see an unrestrained capitalism as socially destructive. Other citizenship theorists also believe
that the three types of citizenships are inter-related. For ex;tmple, the right to free speech and
legal equality require some ~neasureof welfare if tl~cyarc to bc more than a formal guariintee.
Indeed, liberal plirralis~nis itself only possible when sonie measure of economic welfare is
guaranteed.
Apart fioln the above justifications, in contemporary political theory, justice has become
allnost it~cxtricablybound up with welfare. John Rawls in his booltA Theory ~fJz~stice insists
that justice is the first virtue of a society and that it should always take priority over other
goods which may be interpreted in the welfare sense. Yet his collcept ofjustice is a welfarist
concept, one specifically concerned with the legitimisatioa of a distribution of resources and
with levels of wellbeing. Indeed, despite its individualistic methodology, it is a normative
theory that posits welfare functions for society differing in substance but not in principle,
e o ~ other
n welfare functions such as utilitarian ones. I-Iis justice is nearer to the liberal political
economy. While his first principle ofjustice is concerned with equal rights to the most extensive
basic liberties compatible with similar Iiberties of others, the second principle is concerned
with the arrangements of social a ~ l deconomic inequalities in such a way that they are to the
greatest benefit of the least advantaged. The purpose of legislation is largely concerned with
the achievement of long term social and economic goals as well as to fulfil the principle that
requires that 'social and economic policies be aimed at maximising tpe long term expectations
of the least advantaged i~nderconditions of fair equality and opportunity'. At social and
economic level, Rawls is in favour of redistributive justice. He considers the proper function
of governlnent as not only to maintain social order, but the achievement of distributive justice
by placing the highest social value on the need ofthe neediest. I-Iowever, he does not believe
in conlplete egalitarian distribution. He advocates privileges and inequalities - not in the
utilital-ian sense of maximization of social good 7 but to i~nprovethe pligl~tof the least
advantaged. This is because according to Rawls, natural abilities and circumstances of birlh
foster privileges and inequalities and since such ineq~~alities cannot be elinlinatcd, sl just society
will seek to compensate for the resulting privileges by investing its resources including tile
abilities of the most talented in efforts assigned to improve the plight of the least fortunates.
To reward those endowed with superior ability would be arbitrary justice. .Justice properly
understood calls not for rewarding those with superior ability, but for compensati~igtllose
endowed with lesser ability. In short, rising above the laissez,faire view of classical liberalism
which leaves the individual alone, Rawls propounded a theory ofjustice in consonance with
the requirements of liberal democratic welfare state. As he writes, 'if law and government act
effectively to keep the market competitive, resources fully ennployed, properly and wealtli
widely distributed over time and to maintain the appropriate social tninimum, then if thcrc is
equality of opportunity urtderwritte~lby education for all, the resulting distribution will be
just'. In the context of welfare, Rawls is a muted egalitarian who extends the ethics of
redistribution beyond the ownership of tangible property to the income derived from personal
talent. Superficially, at least, this seems to put the welfare imperative above the individualistic
demand ofjustice.
-
16.5 WELFARE STATE: CONTEMPORARY DEBATE
The welfare state seems a colnpromise between the market model ol'classical libcralism and
contemporary libertarianisin. It combines the capitalist freedoms and inequalities with socialist
equalities. It wants to achieve the best practical realization ofthe demands of liberty, eqilality
and justice. It retains tlie essentials ofthe capitalist system while removing its attendant abuses.
However, inspite of great claims, the concept of welfare state I-tasraised many questions. Tlie
conte~nporarydebate in western societies has allnost been about the welfare state and the:
crisis in the welfare pl~ilosophy,particularly,after the slow down in the econolnic growth in'
the 1970s. The theory of welfare state believed that the mixed economy would generate a level
of national income sufficient to finance the welfare services and was justified on ethical
grounds; that the pri~naryaim of the welfare philosophers was redistributive i.e. the common
provision for education, health, unemployment insurance etc which would bring equality and
relief from deprivation, and that the welfare state would generate a form of citizenship that
would soften the acquisitive and non-altruistic attitude which was prevalent in the market
society. But the questions are: does it ensure the citizens the necessary income to fight
insecurities and enable them to ensure a stable, dignified and civilized life? Does it remove the
inequalities of real inco~neby adopti~igmeasures to redistribute income between the rich and
the poor and by preventing the concentration of wealth in a few hands? Does the mixed
economy usher a trend whereby private sector is curbed, crippled and made powerless? Has
the welfare state been able to free the economy from booms, depressions, inflation and other
economic crises? Does the state supply the services efficiently? The answer to all these questions
is far from satisfactory.
According to Barry, the assi~nilationof the welfare theory with the philosophy ofthe welfare
state was an intellectual error. The tt~eoreticalmistake was the construction of a social
philosophy that vit-tually ignored those welfare enhancing properties o f the market system
that had been stressed by earlier liberal political economists. As a result, there has been an
inexorable expansion of the welfare state with the result that the welfare state has mutated
from a system designed to protect the vulnerable from the random effects of market forces to
a comprehensive set of social arrangements which had only a contingent connection with tlie
original purpose of interventionis~n.This was because the welfare theorists did nod take proper
account of the institutions that are required for the delivery of the welfare goods. There can be
no guarantee, for example, that the outcome of a competitive party process in a democracy
will coincide with the moral imperatives of state welfare. There was a serious problem as to
whether majority rule procedures are efficient translation into positive policies of whatever
altruistic sentiments exist in a community.
Throughout the twentieth century, these was a sort of consensus about the necessity for some
sort of state welfare because of the realization that there are certain genuine collective welfare
ends which could not be met through voluntary action. What is important about the
contemporary attack on the welfare state is that because welfare involves coercion, it reduces
freedom. The libertarian philosophers like Nozick do not approve of the idea of tlie welfare
state. They defend the market economy and hold that t11e distributive policies of the state in
the name of welfare, violate peoples' rights. They do not agree with Rawls that talents and
skills of the individuals are the cornmon assets of society and the individuals are entitled to
the fruits of their talents so long as they i~nprovethe conditio~lsof the least advantaged section
of society. It is nothing short of seizing one's labour and a fundamental attack on the sovereignty
of the individual. Again, too much role to the state can lead to increasing bureaucracy, increasing
decline of freedom and tnay result in ineficiency. It represents a violation of the rights of
those who are taxed to provide funding for the poor. According to Barry, although the terms
in which Noziclc writes i.e. the invocation of absolute and inviolable individual rights puts
him outside the contemporary debate, his rigorous individualis~nand anti-statism alerted social
theorists to the possibility that many welfare goals could be satisfied outside the formal
apparatus of government. Since his criticism ofthe state is that it leads to coercion, there is a
theoretical possibility that voluntary activity outside the price mechanism could solve at least
some of today's welfare problems.
Tlle experience of post-war welfare in western democracies has cast doubts on not just the
etllical desirability of entrusting collective institutions with the delivery of what came to be
called typical welfare services such as health, education arid insurance, but the efficiency 01%
the ~netllodas well. The unexpected expansion of these services and the huge share of GNP
absorbed by them have led to serious criticism from both the Left and the Right. The diffic~~lty
arises priniarily from a confusion whether the role ofthe state is to provide a minimum standard
of well being to those who are the victims of market economy or a broader conception that
envisages coIlective institutions as prima facie appropriate for the satisfaction of a potentially
liniitless range of hrlrnan wants. In what sense can the common provision ofysay, education
and health, enhance welfare in the sense understood by the philosophers of the welfare state?
The welfare state is characterized by what public econon~istscalled 'churning', whereby
services are funclcd by tax revenue which are then returned to the citizens in the form of
coflcctive and often compulsory services such as unemployment insurance. It is not quite
clear what the rationale for this is, because the compulsory nature of many features of the
welfare state means that individual choice is suppressed; thus, the actual structurc of the
systc~ndoes not reflect peoples' preferences. Critics have also expressed doubts as to how far
the welfare state has been able to provide social justice. For example, the empirical enquiries
into the delivery of welfare services in Britain revealed that redistribution has helped the
middle income groups and there is reliable evidence that it is a universal feature ofall democratic
societies. This is known in political economy as 'Director's Law'. Put at its simplest, this law
holds that since in advanced western democracies, the probable majority of voters is neither
rich nor poor, whatever redistribution takes place is likely to go to it. Also, well- intentioned
welfare policies help one group while unintentionally harm the other. Familiar examples are
the rent control laws which, by freezing the supply of rented accommodation, causcs
homelessness or the minimum wage legislation; which renders unemployed potential workers
whose marginal productivity is lower than the decreed minimum. A more ethical argument is
that excessive welfare produces a depenclency culture which is quite inconducive to good
citizenship. A major example for such arguments refers to the debates which followed the
creation of 'the Great Society' programme of President Johnson. This was a massive prograln~ne
of welfare intervention by the state which provided a good test case for many critics of state
welfare. I t cost about US200 billion dollars per year and included programmes Iike rnedicards,
aid to famiIies of dependent children and food stamps to about 50 million people. Implicit in
this argument was that capitalism was the cause of deprivation. It should be stressed that the
designers of the schelne did not want to create a welfare society, but only to aid temporarily
and to enhance individual autonomy. There is some agreement among observers that the
system has not f~~lfilled its aims. Although the number of people below the poverty line did
reduce, this was not because more people had achieved individual autonomy, but because
more had become dependent on the new welfare payments- Charles Murray makes a distinction
betwcen people in poverty, i.e. people who really need help and well- being, and 'latent
poverty' i.e. people who would be deprived were it not for the existence of state welfare.
According to him, though latent poverty fell to 18% when the schcme was introduced but as
the scheme progressed, the figure began to rise and it reached 22 % in 1980. Also, there was
the breakdown of traditional fan~ilystructures and the rise of illcgititnacy due to the new
benefits for unmarried mothers. This seems then to be evidence of moral hazard on a massive
scale. Although there is some dispute about the figures, ::lost commentators argue at least that
the great society programme has failed to reduce the numbers on welfare.
The critics of citizenship theory also maintain that the ideal ofcitizenship does grant individuals
a claim 01.1the resources of the community, but that it ~ n ~ tbes taccompanied by corresponding
social duties. The individuals are not anonymous agents held together by general rules ofjust
conduct and the cash nexus, but are identifiable members of particular communities defined
in terms of a complex networl<of social rights and duties. Work must be treated as a social
obligation alcin to paying taxes and obeying the law. Lawrence Mead's objection to the 'Great
Society Scheme' was that its benefits were distributed as entitlements requiring no duties on
thc part of the beneficiary. In other words, what is required is a stronger and perhaps bigger
state to enforce the social obligation of work that is relative to the receipt of welfare. But this
could lead to less libesty.
There is a growing recognition that the welfare of the individual is a personal affair which is
not necessarily enhanced by-over- reliarice on the state. A person's welfare is advanced in
ways other than mere increase in income; it is as much a function of personal esteem and
individual autonomy. Critics of the welfare state have such non -economic measures of valuc
in mind when they cointnent on intervelitionist measures of whatever type which have a
tendency to produce dependency and an 'anti-work ethics'. It is also argued that the phcnoinenon
of poverty and deprivation is partly a social or cultural probletn. It is not caused simply by a
scarcity of resources. but by the institutional arrangements which encourage the perpetuation
of the nialaise they are designed to alleviate. During thc 20th century, the direction of causation
has been from the complex structure of welfare institutions to the reproduction of welfare
problems. It is being felt that the times arc propitious for a fundame~~tal re-examination of the
whole issue. Tlic return of education, health, pension and so on to individuals through various
methods of e~~ipowcnnent such as the vouclier scheme could mark the bcginnings o f a new
consensus. Also, it is felt that the decentralization of welfare services to smaller political units
would be a more feasible way of advancing the moral clai~nsand the attendant social obligations
associated with citizenship.
- -.-
16.6 CRlSllS IN THE WELFARE STATE: AN ASSESSMENT
The 1990s are witness to a rcal sclback to the welfarc state. The underlying problem has been
financial. It was argued that the welfare states are expensive. As tlie average age of populntion
increases, so the total cost of welfarc services such as medical care, pensions, education also
increase whereas the worl<ing popillation which shoulders t l ~ eburdcn declines in number.
Thus the demand on thc welfare state increases when the supply is low. For example, when
unemployment goes up, the expendilure on unemployn~entpay also increases but the tax
collected from the workers goes down. Thus, thc recession of the 1980s caused many doubts
with regard to the welfare programmes. Again, Ihe international pressures also matter. If the
cost of welfare in one state is higher than the other, the economy loses its international
competitiveness. As Pierson has pointed out, tlie move to a lnore open international economy
has curtailed opportunities for further dcveloplnent of the national welfare state. And lastly,
the impact of welfare on the willingness to work is also a problem confronting the welfare
state. If people are assured of pay and other benefits, they do not work. And it affects tliose
who have to give a substantial a~noulltof their earnings in tax deductions in order to pay for
the welfare benefits. In ~nanycountries, public support for the welfare state has declined very
sharply. Thus, in tlie present crisis of the welfare state, tlie major point of dcbate is whether
the state is an agency of redistributioti of wealth and services from the rich to the poor or
should it only provide a 'safety net', establishing a minimu~nlevel of welfare beneath whic1.1
no one would be allowed to fall. The present trend favours only a safety net.
SUMMARY
Welfare state was the result of the transforniation of classical liberalis~ninto positive liberalism
in the 20th century. A thoroughgoing revision of liberal tl~eoryrequired a re-examination of
the nature and fi~nctionsof the state, the nature of liberty, equality, justice, the relationship
between liberty and legal coercion. Instead of the state being regarded as a necessary evil,
positive liberalism considered the state as a positive good, an agency of individual and social
welfare and a guardian of the colnmon interests of society.
The ideas ofpositive liberalism were initiated by J.S. Mill, T.H. Green, D. Richie, Hobson in the
nineteenth century and were perpetuated by Harold Laski, R.M. MacIver, J.M. Keynes,
Galbraith in the inter-war period.
The welfare state attempted to reconcile the interest of tlie individual with that of the society
so that the essentials of the capitalist system would be preserved while at the same time,
removing its ill-effects. 3%; purpose of the state is not only to preserve the law and order, but
also to serve the common interest and pcrform welfare services.
Through tlie instrument of thc welfare state, positive liberalism used the power of the state io
guarantee lhc individuals a minimum incor~ieirrespective of the market value of their work,
to help the people in meeting social contiligencies like sickness, old age, unemployment, and
all citizens irrespective of social class are offered an agreed range of social services. ln otller
words, the welfare state was to ensure that all the citizens get a minimum standard of health,
economic security and civilized living and call share according to their capacity in its social
and culture heritage.
The welfare state operates witliin the framework of the masket economy i.e. capitalist 131ode
of production. But it believes that the unrestrainecl operation of the market can prove dangerous
for the individual and the economy. It believes that poverty, dependencies, econolnic insecurity
etc. are not a result of tlie consequences of nature and incompetence on the pat%of the poor,
but resuli from the changeable instilmtions of society. These insecurities can be overcolne by
ren~odellingthk Zoissezfairc econolhy and by introclucing a form of planning to realize these
objectives. But planning should be lcolnbined with a market economy in>various degrees. It
stands for a 'mixed economy'.
4
Positive liberalisin has given various justifications for the welfare state, SLI 1as it enhances
the liberty and autonomy of the individual, it brings more equality among the various classes
in society, it provides social justice, it creates a responsible citizetisi~ip,it pravides socio-
;
econo~nicjustibe by restraining and regulating capitalisln . However, there have been continuing
debates about how to distribute welfare si~chas i) should it be 'selcctively given to those in '
bL
need o r it shouild be universal', ii) slaould it be in kind or cash, iii) sl~ouldii be on the insurance 1
principle fundkd by the people the~selvesor simple redistribution, and v) should there be a
i
constiti~tionalg~laranteefor the welfare or s h o ~ ~itl dbe left to the bargaining groups, vi) should
the welfare state guarantee a safety net of minimum well- being for those wnable to survive
the market society or the idea of market is opposed to welfare.
The concept of welfare state Iias been also a target of attack, particularly from the libertarian
philosophers. They believe that the welfare state reduces the liberty and autonomy of the
individual, leads to coercion and violates the rights of the individual. At a more general level,
in the developed countl.ies which have adopted the welfare model, there is the largest
concentration of wcaltlz and technological potentialities. Neither has the state been able to
relnove the insecurities which are considered avoidable. Welfare measures irrespective of
pension, tax free SLIIIIS, co~iipensationfor loss of office, life insurance, sickness, higher
education, housing etc are concentrated on the better off one-third of the population.
Unen~ploymentand creeping inflation still remain the perlilanent problerns of welfare state.
The ideals of liberal equalitarianisn are not wrong, but they require rcfosms far more extcl~sive
than have been suggested by John Racvls and others.
16.8 EXERCISES
I) Trace the evolution of positive liberalism.
',
2) Write an essay on.the liberal democratic weIrare state.
Witli the rise of liberalis111as a theory of welfare state in the twentieth century, its functions
iricrcased nianifold. It was during this transformation that the state acquired its prcsent all-
pervasive form. However, the fight for classical liberalism was not given up. After the Second
World War. an imporlant contribution to tlic theory of liberalism was made by theorists whose
allegiance lay with early classical liberalisni. This new rnovernent which became popular in
tlie USA and England in tlie 1960s is known by the name, Libertarianism. Many libertarian
texts have been written by people who only know North American political ci~ltureand society.
They claim universal application for libertarianism, but it remains culture bound. The libertarian
~iiovementreceived large scale academic attention with the appearance in 1974 of a book
Anurchy, State cind Ulopin by the I-Iarvard piiilosoplier Robert Nozick. The work achieved
great acclairn for its brilliance of argument and was frequently bracketed with Itawls's A
Theory clJ'Jzrsticc. It inlluenced the Thatcher/Rcagan administrations of the 1980s.
Etymologically, libertarianism means fiee will or free advocacy of liberty. It is the most
radical form of individualism and advocarcs pure capitalist economy, as tlie surest expression
and defence of'individuality. In political theory, it answers once again the r~~ndnmental question
i.e. what are the legitimate functions of the state - in a radical way. Ilolding tlie liberty of the
individual as sacrosanct. libertarianism asserts that welfare measures cat1 lead to rt collectivist
state. I-Iere one can ask: if the liberal pri~~ciples Iiave been rooted in American and English
political culture, then why has this new term come into use. According to Martin Masse, this
is because liberalism since the end ofthe 19th century has taleen up a new meaning, which is
not at all compatible wit11 the defence of individual freedom. While in the U.K., the so-called
liberal parties are only a little more moderate than the socialists parties in their inclination to
use state power, in thc United States, a liberal was considered a leA winger who advocated
wealth redistribution and supported a big government that interferes everywhere in peoples"
lives; a governlneiit that tries to solve all real and in~aginaryproblcms by taxing and spending
and creating bureaucratic programmes for each good cause. In short, today's libcralisnl aims
at creating a tyrannical state that does riot hesitate to trample on individual Freedorn in the
name of an ittiattainable collectivist utopia. Tliis type of'libcralisn~has nothing to do with
classical 1iber.alism. Libertarianism, on the other hand, is inspired by former periods of liberal
progress but aaicr onc century during which collectivist +id totalitarian ideologies have
dominated, they realizced tlial classical liberalism was not strong or principled enough to
stem the rising tide of statisni. They are Inore coherent or some may say radical than traditional
liberals in tl~eirdefencc of persotla1 liberty and market economy and in their oppositioli to
state power. Libertarian scholars have shown that it is the decentralized action oftlie i~idividuals
who pursue their own cnds in a fsee markct whicli ~nakcsit possible to create and maintain
this spontrlneous order to bring prosperity and to suppork the corlipler: civilization in which
we live.
I,ibertarinnism is opposed to collectivist ideologies of all types, be i t ol'the leR or oflhc: right
which stress the primacy of the group, nation, social class, sexual or- et1111icgroup, religious ctr
language cotnmunity etc. 'They oppose all whose purpose is to regimetit individuals in tlie
pursuit of collective goals. They do not dcny the relevance of these collective identities, but
claim that it is up to the individuals theniselves to determine whicli group they wish to belong
and contribute to. It is not for the state or for institutions that derive their power from the state
to impose their own objectives in a bureaucratic and coercive manner.
Thus, libertarianism rejects the main political developments of the 20th century; that is, the
sustained growth in the size of the state and the range of its interventions in the private lives
ofthe citizens. It is the only one that demands and works for radical change, a drastic reduction
ofthe size and role of the state, they are the only ones who value individual freedom, above all
else. More and more people realize that libertarianism constitutes the only alternative. The
libertarian movement hardly existed in the 1960s but really took off in the Unites States in the
early 1970s. Whereas collectivist philosophies and Keynesian economics used to dominate
academic life, recently there has been a revival of interest in classical liberalism and free
market economy throitghout the world. After a century of eclipse, classical liberalism in its
libertarian offspri~igis becoming an influential pllilosophical doctrine and movement in the
2lst century.
Like all philosophical movements, libertarianism is varied, containing several schools atid
sub-groups and one will find no. unanin~ityabout its theoretical justifications, its goals or the
strategy that should be adopted to reach them. Mainly, there are two types of libertarianism
and each has its own answers to the queries. One group, the anarchists or also known as
'ai~rrrcho-capiiulists'advocate the complete disappearance of the state an privatisation of
I'
even the basic functions mer~tionedabove. This goal tnay appear extreme or riclic~~lous at first
sight, but it is based on a theoretically plausible argunent. It is for example, easy to imagine
that one could replacc provincial stateor mr~nicipalpolice forces (with the corruption, abuses
of power, the incompetence and fidvouritis~~i which usually characterize them all and often
with impunity) with private security agencies. These would make profits only in so far as they
really protect citizens and fight real criminals. Anarcho-capitalists use the same type of
arguments to supporl the privatisation ofthe army and tlle courts which woyld leave nothing
for a state to do. Private firms w o ~ ~then
l d provide all the services that individuals might need
in a pure free marlcet. In a context where public spending now accounts for almost half ofall
that is produced, where govcrnn~entsconti~lueto adopt law acter law so as to increase their
control over our life, a inore realisfic libertarian goal is si~nplyto reverse this trend and fight
for any practical advance of freedhrn and any concrete reduction in state tyranny. The other
branch is known as '~lzinicn~chist,~' who maintain that government may appropriately engage
in police protection, enforcement of contracts and national defence, foreign relations, justice,
the protection of private property and individual rights. All remaining fi~nctionsshould be
privatised. In the context of a very decentralized federal state, libertarians accept, tiowever,
that local autliorities can intervene in other fields and offer various types of social and economic
arrangements in so far as dissatisfied citizens can easily move to otherj urisdictions. Definitely
not included, according to miniarchists, is the power to tax, even to secure money for the
functions just mentioned,
'The q~testionarises: wliy the li bertarial~sendorse these views so sharply at variance wit11 most
political theory? Firstly, libertarians hold an exti.emely strong doctrine of individual rights,
particularly the right of individuals to acquire and hold property. Tlieir concept of property
rights and freedorn of contract excl~~des welfare rights, since claims to these rights require in
the libertarian view cor~~pulsory labour of some on behalf of other. Secondly, libertarians
ibelieve that the operation of an unrestricted system of laissez faire capitalism is the most
desirable social systeln. People unfettered by state compulsions woi~ldbe iiltely to establish
Ibis sort of econoinic systetn and it is all for the best that they do. 'we shall study all these
sspects in detail in the next section.
46
17.3 POLITICALTHEORY OF LIBERTARIANISM
It is claimed that the kcy concepts of the political theory of libertarianism have developed
over many centuries. The first inklings of them can be found in ancient China, Greece and
Israel; they began to be developed into something resen~blingmodern libertarian philosophy
in the work of such seventeenth and eigllteentll century thinkers as John Locke, David Mume,
Adam Smith, Thomas Jefferson and 'l7lomas Paine. In the twentieth century, they were
reinvented by neo-liberal thinkers such as Michael Oalceshott, F.A. Hayek, Milton Friedman,
Robert Nozick etc. While these scholars have given a new intellectual impetus to the libertarian
movement, a growing concern for personal autonotny lias provided personal ground fbr the
sowing of the idea. Some of the ilnportant concepts of libertarian theory are ns follows:
While1 the libertarian ideal of individualism has certain fanlily rcsen~blancewith the neo-
classic~~l defence of celpitalisll~,anarcho~individi~alismand classical liberalism, it is reducible
to none oftliese. Libertarianism can only be ~~liderstoocl against the backdrop of the einergence
ol'totalitarianism and the modern wcll'are state since tlie 1930s .Libertarians sec the indivi uul
as the basic unit of soci;il analysis. Only irldividuals r~inlteclioices and are rcsponsible for
P
their actions. Libertarian thought emphasizes the dignity of the individual, which entails both
rights and responsibility. The progressive extension ofdignity to more people -to womcn, to
people ofdifferent rcligiol~sand different races- is one of the great libertarian triut~lphsbf the
western \vorld.
Libertarianisnl represents tlie most radical for111of ii~dividi~alism, short of outright a11arcllis111.
Along with it, it exalts the pure capitalist economy as the surest expression nnd defellce o f
individuality. Nevertheless, the near anarctlis~nof'sorne libertarian doctrines have prompted
the expression 'annrcho-capitalism. However, the libertarian defence of capitalisn~would
legititnise a degree of ccono~nicinequality that true anarchists could not abide. The works of
Ayn Rand are a leading expression oftlie libertarian ideal of individualism, even it' it sotnctimes
takes an extreme and occasionally i~nrepresentativei'orm. A brilliant i-rovelist,she dcvclopeci
the libertarian ideal both in fictional worlts and poler-ilical essays. Utterly rejecting ally
tl~eologicalnotions or ideas that rank the community over the individual, she held that the
individual is tlie basic unit of society, the prirne focus of moral concern and tlic sole source of
human creativity. According to her, the root cause of oiir modern tro~rblesis the philosophy of
ulbvism, a moral position that effectively destroys the supreme value of'individuality. Altruism
- the notion that man shotild place the welfare of otllers above his own- is the root of 811 evils
and not money. Indeed, n-~oneyis cherished as the just reward and fair estimation of the
individual's inherent excelleuce. For Rand, altruism is a vice and selfishness is n virtue, though
selfishness does not mean a petty snivelling self-indulgence but accepting full person~l
responsibility for one's life and fate. Altruism is the villain ofthe piecc because it plays upon
the morbid guilt feelings ofthe donor and keeps the recipient in R state of cliilclish subservience.
Neither party can develop a mature confident outlook on life which sllould cullninate in a fair
and cquitablc and truly voluntary exchange of goods and services. The ethics of altr~~ism is
always gratuitous; it preaches that someone has a prescriptive right to a free ride on someone
else's back. According to this theory, the notion that one person should sacrifice himself for
the sake of another is radically evil. It is an affront to h u l n ~ ndignity and an open invitation to
prefer death over life.
17.3.2 Individual Rights and Liberty
Central to libertariallislii is the claim that the i~~dividual S I I O L I I ~ be fsee from the interference
ofotf7ers. Personal liberly is the suprenie Inoral good. Hence, o~ie'sliberty can justifiably be
restricted only if he consents to the restriction. Any other restriction, including taxing incolnes
for the pllrpose of redistributiol~is unjust. In other words, the libertarians couch tlieirt~leoryin
the language orrights. Each individual has natural negative rights - to atleast iife, liberty and
property. NUone can justiiiably harm him, restrict his freedom, or take his property, i.e., no
one can his rights withoi~this consent. Moreover, these are general rights; they apply,
so to speak, against the whole world. And since rights invariably liave correlative duties, all
the people in the world liave the duty not to interfere with the rightholder's life, liberty and
property. Eacll person possesses these rights simply by virtue of liis hulnanity - he does not
have to do afiytllingto obtain this moral pi.otcction. The possession of rights does not depelld
llpon the consent of others. They are essential moral constituents of personhood. Thcy are not
grallted by the government or by tlie society; they arc inherent in the n a t ~ ~ol'human re beings.
lt is intuitively right that individuals enjoy the sccurity of SLICII rights; tlie burden of explanation
lie wit11 those who would take these rights away. Libcrtarinn theorists often move back
alld fort11 betweeti talk of negative rights and talk of' liberty. 'l'his, according to Hugh La
pollettc, is because they ulti~natelysee rights and liberty as equivalet~tor because they hold a
tl1t.ory ofril;hts which is groi~ndedin personal liberty. TI'hct.eare no circunistances in whicjl
ttle negative gene1.d rights can be justifiably overridden in which une's liberty can be j1tstifiably
iilnited ~ i ~ h ohis ~ co~isent,
tt Forexalnple, A's right to properly (or life or liberty) call nevel.bc
oven.idden for the benefit of others (to satistj, the allcgcd positive righls of others). 'A' can
clloose to charitably give his property to someone or he can volontarily give sotnconc a positive
ri&t to his propcrty. Nevertheless, morally he cannot be lbrcud -either by legal s;~nc~ions 01.
mafill r~llcs- lo give up his life, liberty or property. This nloralllegnl prohibition insures that
an indiyiLiua17s liberty cannot be restricted in any way will~outliis consent.
In the cuntext of rights, what is important to note is that libertarians lnilke n distinction betwecll
negative and positive rights. Forexalllple, take the general right tu life; in its negative version,
i t says tfiat otdy others must not kill (01. take t l ~ clife of.) lhe rightholdcr but in its positive
it would also require that others do something to hclp save the rightholder's life if it
is possible for them to do so. The importance ofthis distinction is tliat tlie libcrtnrian holds
illat people have no basic positive rigl1t.s- that all positive obligatiolis have to be in sotile way
assured or undertaken by the obligated indivitlual i.e. by promising that he will perform the
it~dicatedaction.
'J'hus, we see two important features of libcrtnrianism. 17irstthc ~siln:~ry ~ L I S ~ O SofL negative
'
general rights is rhe protection of individual liberty, to ensure tliat no one's lifi: is restricted
w i t l ~ o his
~ ~ consent.
t Or as Nozick puts it: 'siclo constrnints (which arc equivalci~tto negntive
general riglits) upon action reflect the andcrlying Knntian principle that individuals are ends 1
and not niercly Incar1s; they cannot be sncriliced or used for thc ncliicving of other etlds
without their consent.. .(these constraints refluct the I>~ctof o t ~ scpalntc
r existences)'. 'l'hey
reflect the fact that no more balancing act can t:lkc plucc among us. Sccvndly, the libertarian
i
llolds thal a sul'f'icienl reason to reject (my allegcd ~noralrille or principle ordistributive justice
is that st~ctla rule or principle restricts somconc's fiecduni witliuul his consent. I-Iayek,for !
example, argues that we should reject plans tc) expand govern~iient~~l mlcs since such expansion
necessar-ily undermines individual libcrty. And Nozicli's priniury ob.ject,ioli to Rawls is that
Rnwls's, twa principles restrict i~idividualliberty witllout consent.
As mentioned above, I I I L I C ~political and n?oral philosophy over the centuries has concerned
itself wit11 human liberty. However, the philosopl~ical outlook on politics knowti as
libe~tarianisn~, tnltes this idea to its extremc, proposing to make liberty the only interest that a
state may properly have with respect to its citizens..Libertarianism takes liberty as our sole
right (this is also called 'deontological libertarianism*) against considering liberty as the ,vole
value to be promoted by the governl~ientand the individual. The point of malting liberty a
general right is LO prevent tlie government fsom forcing people to do things. According to it,
our sole fundamental right is the right to liberty, all other rights are subordinate to that- they
are either special cases of tliat one or derived from it directly or indirectly.
Just like the concept of negative rights, libertarinnisnl also enlphasizes the negative aspcct of
libcrty i.e., liberty as absence of' inlposition by other people, specifically those impositions
that are caused by their intentional actions. I n this version, each person is to be entitled to do
as that person I i kcs, or judges best, except only when liis or her action cvould impose 011others
- w o ~ ~ interfere
ld with the iutcnded dcsired courses ol'action of someone else or (if this is
different) damage that person, in the sense of' doing what that person did not want to be done
$withor to his or her body or mind. It is as Mobbes called it 'absence of external impediments'
or 'seeking peace'; that is, of'not 'tnalting war' on others; or as Locke teniied it 'not harming
them in rcspcct of'life, tiealth, liberty or pro]~c~.ty'; or Kant's version of 'acting only on ~ n a x i ~ n s
that can coexist :~Io~igwitli the Sreeclom ofthe will of each and all'. These have been echoed
in tlic co11ten1por:irq,411ieric:tn philosopher .lolln Kawls' formulation of a liberty principle that
'each person participating irn n prncticc, or atlkcted by it. has an equal right to tlie most extensive
basic lil~er~y compaliblc with a similar liberly Ibr others'. What is important in all these versions
is that tlie c~l~phasis is 011tlic negative liberty; peoplc cnccrunter each other and in doing so
they are to rck:~in li'o11i ;iction:; that wo~lldcause the otl~erperson harm, danger, diseasc and
the like. Any otl~ernctic,~~s at-c pcrl~iissible~Iietlleror 1101 tli& have tlie ul'l'ccl oT'maxiniisirzg'
sonnethirig. Agilin c ~ c r c i o is
~ iillso tl~o~t~ght
to collide with libcsty. tibcrlarians also take liberty
as die 'nbscllcc of cocrciuli' and tlicy conclctnn it along with oke1-t I'osce. Libcrty is the absence
of obstnclcs, inil~osedcosl:;; the cocrcer clots in.~pot,en cost on liis viclim.
The natural bnsclinc: to wl~ichlibertnriuiis nppcal i'or liberty is our body. 'I'lic libcrtari;lns hnIcI
that we ought to make anyone's libcrty into a right; that is, we ought to nlalit: it the case that
in~positionor proposed impositions against anyone's liberty is a ground for taking action to rectify
or prevent them, and that is what the libertarian principle does. This right is equivalent to
the right of self-ownership. Each person would be regarded as 'owning himself' in the
sanie straightforward sense as that in \vIiich we can own all sorts of things si~chas cars and
footballs; namely, bei~igable to do what U I I C wants to with the self in questiun; at the s a ~ n e
time, one is riot able to do that with others; rather, their willingncss or consent I I I L I S ~be
established before one n ~ a ydo things with others.
And last but not the least, why would peoplc value liberty'? For the libertarians, liberty is not
another good like peanut buttcr or a car, it is rather a necessary condition ol'actioti, ins the
selise that il'wc do x, it h:is to have been thc case by defil~itionthat nothing prevented us from
doing it. Liberty is the condition of bcing nblc to do whatever it is, the libct-ty to do which is
in cli~estion.111 otl~erwords,, it is not really i ~ pin ~ l i cair whether libeny is il goocl thing or not.
Liberty is us good as w1n;itevt:r can bc achieved by acting. According to Iibcrtari:ins, liberty is
not a value, it is it conclilion of action.
17.3.3 Civil Society
A grcllt degree of order in society is ilecessary for individuals lo sl~rviveand flol1risb. It is
easy to assume that order must be inlpostc/ by a ccntral authority, the wc iolpose o d e r
on a collection or a football team. 7.h: great insight of libertarian social analysis is that
order in society arises spontaneo~lsly,out of the action of thousands or lnillionf ofil~dividllals
w13o coordinate their action with those of others in order to achieve their purpose, over hunla1.l
Ilistory. We have gradually opted for more freedom and yet managed to develop a corll~lex
society wit11 an intricate organization. The lnost important organization in human society -
law, language, money and markets - all deveioped spontaneously without central direction.
Civil society is another example of spontaneous order, the associations within civil suciety
are foromled for a purpose, but civil society itself is not an organization ant1 does not have a
purpose of its own. vl"heassociations we form with others can make LIP what we call civil
society. Those associations can tale an amazing variety of forrns - falniiy, churclies, sclloo~s,
clubs, katernal societies, condo~iliniumassociations, neighbourhood groups and the myriatf
forms of commercial society such as partnerships, corporations, labour unions and tl.-ailc
associations. All these associations serve human needs ill different ways. Civil society rnny be
broadly defined as all the natural and voluntary associations in society. Some analysts
distinguish between cominercial and tion-profit organizations, arguing that business is a part
of the market and not of civil society, but 3ccording to Bauz, the real distinction is bel\vccn
associations tl~atare coercive i.e. the state, and tl~osethat are ncitural or vol~lrltary- everytliir~g
else. Whether a particular association is establisheci to malte a profit or to achieve some o-ehcl.
purpose, the key characteristi'c is that our participation in it is voluntarily chosen. It sllould bc
noted that the associations within the civil society'are created to achieve a particular purpose
but civil society, as a whole has no purpose. It is the undersigned, spontaneously emcrging
result of all those purposive associations. These assuciatio~isgive people connzctiuns with
other people. No one of thern, howevei; exhausts one's personality and def-inesone co~l~plct,uly.
In this libertarian conception, we connect to different people in diSkrent ways i j t l thc b;lsIs 01'
free and voluntary consent. Ernest Gellner says tila2 ~.iiotlerncivil society rerluires a imoclular
tnan'. Instead of a rnan who is entirely the product of and absorbeci by a particular cult.ure,
modular lnan 'can combine into speciiic purpose, crd I~oc,limited sssociatior\s,\~vitl~out hindil~g
himself by solne blood ritual'. He can form links with others \vhich a.l.e 'effective even thouL.ii
are flexible, specific, instrumental,' and as individuals colnbilre in nlyriad ways, commullity
emerges; not the close coln~hunityof the village or the ~ne:;sianiccommunity pro~nisedby,
say for example, by mamism, national socialistn and i.iII li~lfillingreligions, but a community
of fiee individuals in voluntar'y chosen associations. Individua!~do not enlei,ge fi.om con~~nunity,
community elnerges from individuals. It emerges not because anyone plans it, ccrtai~llynot
because thp state creates it, but because it nii~st.TO fillfil their ~leedsand desires, indlviclllals
must combine with others. society is an association of'individ~talsgoverned by legal n~lcs01.
perhaps an association of associations, but not one large community, 01- one !;,,lily. Monbenllip
in a group need not diminish one's individuality; it con a~nplif' it, hy frceillg people froal tile
limits they face as lone individuals and increasing their opportunities to acllicve their own
goals. Such a view of the co~nmunilyreqi~iresthat membership bc chosen and nut compulsory.
The market arises from the fact that liuni~nscan accomplish Inore in cooperation with each
other than individilally and the Sact that, we can recognize this. If we were a species for wtroln
cooperation was not niore productive than isolated work, or if we were,unable to discern the
benefits of cooperation, then we would not only remaill isolated and atomistic, but as Ludwig
Von Mises explains, ' e ~ ~ cman
l i would have been rorced to view all other lnen as his enemies,
his craze for the satisfaction of'liis own appetites w o ~ ~ have
l d brought him into an implacable
conllict with 811 his neighbo~~rs'. Without the possibility of ~ n u t t ~ benefit
al l'ron~cooperation
and the division of labour. neither feelings of sympathy and frieridsllip nor the market order
i~sclfcould arise. 'I'hose ~ 1 1 say
o that 'hu~nansare niade for cooperation, and not competition'
ihil to recognize that thc market is cooperation.
Many people accept that ~narketsarc necessary, but still feel that there is something vngtrcly
immciral about them; tllcy fkel that iriarkets Icad to inequality or they dislike tlie self- interest
reflected in markets. hlarkcts are often called 'brutal' or 'dog-eats-dog'. But 1i berbrinns believe
that marlccts arc not only essential to economic progress, but that they are Inore consensual
and lead to more virtue and ecli~nlitytli~itigovernment coercion. TIiis is done throitgh: i)
information and coordination, ii) prices,'iii) efficiency in production, iv) technological
innovations, and v) competition. Firstly, markets are based on consent. No businessn~ansends
an invoice for a p r o d ~ ~notc t ordered. No business car1 force anyone to trade. Businessmen try
to find out what is required by the consumers. Whatever is produced is done so in response to
or in anticipation of consiuner demand, since the only way in which the producers can maximize
his own position is by selling his goods to tlie consuming population. But where do they get
the inl'ormation? It is not in a massive book. In the market economy, it is not ernbodied in
orders from a planning agency. Secondly, this vital infortnation about other peoples' wants is
enrbodied i n prices. Prices do notjust tell us how much somell-tingcosts at the store. The price
syste11-1pulls together, all the information available in the econorny about what each person
wants, how I ~ L I C I Ihe valiies it and how it call best be produced. Prices lnake that information
itsable to the producer and the consumer. Each price contains within it information about
consumer dcn~andsand about costs of production, ranging from the amount of labour labourneeded
to produce the item to the cost of labour to the bad weather on the orher side of the world that
is raising 1.he price of tlie raw materials needed to produce the good. The information that
prices deliver allows people to worlc together to produce more. The point of an economy is
notdust to prodikce lriore things. It is to produce more things tliat people want. Prices tell all of
us what otlier people want. The price system reflects tlie choices of nill lions of producers,
cotIsumers, and resource owners who [nay never ineet and coordinates their efforts. Althol~gh
we can never feel affection for or even meet everyone in llie economy, market prices help to
worlc together to produce more oi'what everyone wants. Ulililie a government which at best
takes the will of the majority 2nd iinposes it on evelyone, n?arl<etuses prices to let buyers and
sellers freely decide what they want to do with their money. Thirdly, co~npetitionbetween
pr0cfucen.selisures that the most efficient ones to supply the consumer market since only they
will be able to produce goods cheaply. The consumes, in maxi~nizilighis economic welfare,
pl~hhasesonly at tlie lowest available price. Fourtl~ly,since producers can improve tlleir
economic position by expanding their n~arlcet,each producer will be in constant competition
wit11 others. Seeking to expindone's market car1 be accomplished only by reducing prices
(price competition), ant1 this can be achieved only by reducing production costs via
technulogical innovations. The system autolnatically generates technological change and
develop~~zent. And lastly, tl~e'marketsystem is highly competitive. As explained above, it is
precisely ttli.ough cotnpetition tl1a.t it car1 be So~lndhow things can be produced at the least
cost, by discoveritig who will sell raw niaterial or labour services for the lowest price. Any
interference with fire co~npetitionbetween economic units will defeat the system's ability to
provide automatically thc advantages described above. Also rapid atid srilooth sh,iRsof labour
and capital n i ~ ~be s t possible fi-om one industry to another. People are motivated by lnaterinl
well being a~"tdby economic gain. Hence, to the extent that they are deprived oi'economic
incentives, the ti1;u.kc.t tnecl~anisrnwill bseali dawn or seriously compronlised as a basis for
allocation of' goods and service!;. 'i'lrc basic c[uu:ition. accordil~gto libertnrintls, is ho~vto
combine nII the resources in stxiety including 11lrm;ln effort to produce tl.1~ greatest possible
output w!lic.[l will satisfj, pcople most. I1 is tliro~lgkcolnpctition lo :~ltmctnew custotners that
this caordit~ittionis gcnerateci. It is possiblc tl.lat many firms niny not clo well and could be out
of business. 'This, according,l.olibcr.l:lrians, is tllc 'creative destruction' o f the marliet. I-Tarsh
as the C O I I S L I I I ~ ~ ji~clger~le~it
~S' lnay li-el lo somcone who loses a job o r an investment, the
innrliet worl<s on tlie principle uj' t'ql~illity.111 :I f'sec n.~:~rket, 110i?r111gets special privileges
fium tlie government aricl c a ~ hr n ~t ~c;ol~st:l~rlly
s ~;.~ti!iiyconsulners to stay in business. 'l'hus,
fi.11.f'soni iriducir~gself-intcresl, as c1.itics cI.~:irgc,i~i\tlic ~llarketplace t l ~ cIhct of sell.'-interest
itlifuccs pcople to serve otl~er!;.kliu.Iccts rc\vai.d Iloncsty becn~~se pcople arc marc willing to do
bitsill~::ii with those w l ~ ohove a reputation l i honesty,
~ Markets rcwar.d civility bccause people
prefer to dc:d wit11 courlecius pastrlcrs and suj)plicrs.
Apart 1i-olndcl'ending rn;wl.ct fi.t:edulns ancl Iiinit:ltion:, un [he use ofthe stato for socisl welfhre
policicb , libarta~'ii~ns a1.c opl~i~secl to ;111y r-c(/i.sft.ihrltir'etasuiion scheme. It believes that
~.edistributivetux:ttion is inlicrcn~lywrung, a viult~tionol'thc pcoplc's right. I'eople have a
righi to dispose of thuir goods and services 1.recly. As Nozick p ~ l it, t 'people have rights and
there are tliings no pcrvon or grolrp may (lo to them (\vithout violating tlicir rights). So strong
and f2r reaclling arc tllesc rights tllat they raise the cluestion of what, il'anything, i k state and its'
oflicials rnny do'. 'Tllis has bccri best ocplaincd by Robert Noziclc in his lit~nausentitlement
theory.
Libertarianism is not libertinisni or hedonisn~.It is not a clairn tliat 'people can do anything
they want to and nobody else can say anytl~ing'.Rather, libcrtarianis~nproposes a society OE
liberty under law, in which ind~vidualsare fiee to pursiic thcir own lives sn long as they
lhespectthe eqi~alrigllls ol'others. The rule of law means that individuals are governed by
generally applicable and spontaneously developed legal rules, not by arbitrary commands;
and that lliose ri~lessl~oitldprotect the ficedotn of individuals t~ pursue Iiappiness in their own
way, not aim at any particular result or outcome.
A Inore powerfill definition o'fthe libertarian view of the miliinial state has been developed by
R.obert Nozick in his book A)?ar.chj! State and Utopiu. Nozick talks about the state in the
context of indiviclual rights. Following tlie tradition of John Locke, lUozick speaks of prior
anc! inalienable rights ofthe individual possessed independent o-fsociety. I-lesays tliat rights
are the property of the individual and are so strong and fir reaching that they raise a number
of basic qucstians si~clias: wl'iat, if anything, the state tnay do? I-1.0w much mom do individual
rights leave for tho state? What is tlie nature of tlie state? What are its legitimate fi~nctionsand
what is itsj~istification?The state, according to Nozick, should be a minirnal state, limited to
the narrow filnctions of protection against force, thel't, fraud, enforcement of contract and so
01.1, Any more exteiisive state will violate the person's riglit not tu be forced to do certaili
things and 3s SLICII W O L I ! ~be u~i.justified."The miniinal state is inspiring as well as right'.
What is iniportant is thnt tlie statc must not use its coercive apparatus for the purpose of
getting same citizen to aid others, and prohibit activities of people for their own good or
protection.
Since Noziclc strong1 believes in tlie rights of the individuals, he seriously considers the
1
anarchists' claim that he monopoly of i~scof force by tlie state may violatc thc individual's
riglits and hence, llle state is immornl. Against this claim, Nozick argues tliat the state will
arise fioni anarchy e cn tlio~~gli'no one intends this. Individuals in tlic state of naturc wo~ild
find it in tbeir interedt to allow a 'dominant protective agency' to emerge which would have
de facto motiopoly OFforce a,ncl coi~ldconstitute a state like entity. The formation of such an
!
1
entity, if done in an appropriate way, tilay violate no onc's rights, i.e. if it does not go beyond I
its legitimate powers of protection, justice and defence. Justifying the minimal state, he tI
categorically asserts that liberty must get absolute precedence over equality. 1.1~ opposed the i,
policies of progressive taxation and positive discrimination and asserts that realization of !:
liberty should not be inhibited by the policies of the governn~ent:in providing public health
care, education or ~iiinimumstandard of' living. He argued tltat those wlio own wealth [nay I
voluntarily adopt solnc redistribution. He is against any redistribution of property by the state
I
becai~seit may transgress the liberty of tliose wlio have property. For Nozick, the state is no I
!
more than a night watclilnan, protecting the inviolable riglits of the citizens. Fle asserts that
the welfare notihn which advocates tliat it is the society which allocates resources is not only
wrong, but illc$itimatc because there is no such thing as 'society' except in the minimal sense
of being an a'ggrcgate of individuals. 'Tliere are only individual people with their own individual
lives' and society is no niore tllan the sun1 of its individual components, State interventio~l
nieans appropriation of both bone's resources and orie's self'. And 'seizing the results of
someone's labour is equivalent to seizing I~oursfsom 11ini and directing liini to carry on variot~s
activities. If pcople force yo11to do certain worlc or inr rewarded work, for a certain periocl of
tirne, tlicy decide what you are to do and what purpose your worlc is to serve apart fiom your
decisions. This process v,lliert:by they take this decision f'rom you tnakes the111a part -owner
q
ofyou; it gives them a right in you . Tlros, the welfare s t a b is a threat to liberty and
independence oftlic indivicluals bccnuse individ~ralis the sole o\vtier of himself and hi:; talent.
Mow far is the 11on-interventionist,tninirnal and marlcct dominated concept of libertarian state
justified? Noziclc's views are based on certain inalicriabla: rights of the individual, possessed
independent of socicty. However, a fkature of L11e modcni state is that it has recognized a
range of individual riglits which were not recognized by ancient Greek or ~nedievnlsociety,
Rights are socially and historically conslitutcd. In fact, thc rights which Nozick defends are
actually those riglits which were lli~tol.ic:~Ilyspe~il?cto tlie marlcet and were defined and
constituted in the context of capitalist rcl:ltinns. 'They were neither natural nor prior to ttie
state. Secondly, if the I.esourcc allocation i b to bc clone by the marltet, it cannot be cc~ual
Isecausc in a cnpitnlis~sociciy, the mnl'lcct also privileges some groLips ovcr others williin the
system of production and excliangc. I-Icl~ce,thc idea of n Srec and sovereign individual choosing
what to do wit11 liis resources is r i myth. Noziclc's occount of the r~iiniri~itrn
statc fails because
it contains IIO tlicory of l11xatio11.For this season, othcr libertarian scholars insist that taxation
be according to gcncral rules, unilbrinly npplietj, l:or csamplc, Ilnyek and Friecli~lanhavc
argued that only a system of' p~-oportionalt;tsntion is li~llyconsislcnt with the 1ibertari:ln
requiremcnts, Proportional taxation woultl prevent tlie iinposition of redistributive taxation
on wealthy ancl unpopul~u-~ninoriticsand \vni~ld,thcrcby, ].enlove a mnjor area of arbitrarirkuss
fro111p ~ ~ b l policy.
ic l'lley advocate that tlic taxatior~policy be govcrnetl by general r~1lc.sso
that governments arc prevented in thcir service activities fi.otii curbing economic freedoin in
subtle and covert ways.
[ii short, the concept of limited governn~cntpropounclcd by the iibcrlnrians ;icknowlcdges the
statc as a pesn~anentnecessary cvil. in doing so, it csploits thc insights of philosophers such
as Adam Smith. As I-1:iyek admits, tlicre is a spont:tncous osclcr in social l ifc, but cluulifics that
insight with the recognition that thc spont:lncous process of' society car1 only be hcncficial
against a bacl;ground of lcgnl institutions in which the basic liberties ;Ire guaranlccd for ;~ll.
'I'he libertarian concept of the state cschews no less lir~iiiytllc revisionary conceplioii u f
goven~mentas thc gu:~rdi;tnand provider ol'gencrnl well'are, empowered to nct on its otvll
ol'l.Iic colnnloli goocl - a conception whose renlity is
discretionnl.y ;lutllority in Ilie p~~rciiit
cverywlicrc tli:~tof n wcalc povclnment, prcy to collusive ititercst grottp!; and incapable of'
delivering even the security In cn.joyrncnt uS basic liberties which is the state's only titlc to
ai~thority.
e Some libertarial-1sargue that we arc borti wit11 set oSr.iglits - the rights to life. liberty
ancl property - \vliicl~l~iiistbc respcctc.d. L3ut the qucstio~iis why these I-ights and r~ot
others'! 'I'hc libertaril~ns,answer is that they arc csso~~tial
to :illow people to lead thcir ocvll
livcs, that they rellect the itnpcrativc to treat pcople ns eilds in thetnsclves and not merely
as a means to sotne ends and that they recognize tlie separateness of individuals. But this
does not answer the question of why tliese rights are natural. According to Hammerton,
there is no reason to believe that the rights are natural, pre-existing riglits independent of
the laws of a society.
'There is no doubt tliat treating individu3ls as ends in themselves is good. One can also
agree that people can not plan ahead r:ffectively if they cannot rely on being able to keep
their possessions. However, one can also argue that providitig people with tlie necessary
resources for survival is also consistent with respect fbr others. 1fa person has no shelter,
no job, no money, then one cannot plan effectively since one is subject to the decisions
of others to the extent that one cannot cvcn be certain of survival. Hence, to give enough
resources to lift oneself out of the predicament helps oti both the counts: of treating one
as an end and in enabling orie to plan effectively. This can be done by taxing thc rich
which the libertarians do not like. But if yoit do not do this and let the poor go Iiungry,
you are also violating the principle and claiming i n effect that allowing peoplc to keep
every last penny oftl-ieir money is more important than preventing sotaleone from starving.
The sil-iiple poillt is that in a libertarian society those without any property are unfree -
they cannot act without other people helping them and allowing- them to usc their property
- unless you view freedom as tlie freedom to act within your rights. I-iuwever, since it is
the rights themselves being discussed here, tlie libertarian cannot fall back on this view
of freedom to clefcntl those rights. In short, the libertarian view as to what are legitimate
rights cannot be accepted.
a Critics also do not accept the libertarians' definition offrecdorn as 'absence of coercion'.
If wc take this definition of freedom, then the amount of frectlo~na pel.son has is tlie
extent to which they act without being coerced to do (or not to do) something againsi
their will. In a libertarian society, orie cannot (legitimately) do anything with atiotlier's
property if thcy do not want you to, so your only guaranteed freedom is dctcrmiried by
the arriount of property you have. This has the consequence that somconc with no property
has no guaranteed freedom, and that tlie more property you have, the grcater is your
guaranteed frceclon~.In other words, a distribution of property is s distribution ol'li*cedom,
as the libertarians tlie~nselvesdefinc it. Thus, talting this definition of li-eedom and a
belief in tlie flee market togetl~er,the libertarians are saying that the best way of'protnoting
fieedorn is to allow same people tc~have more of it than others, even whcn this may lead
to sotne having very little freedom or even none. In olher words, tlioi~ghtlic libertarians
want everyone to have an equal sphere of guaranteed freedom, yet the market does not
give everyone such n sphere and does not guarantee anyone any ficedom at all. Again
taking property from someone de.finitely restrict one's freedom in some way , bitt all
societies restrict peoples' frccdom i n some way and libertarians thc~nselvesaccept sollie
restrictions on freedom - such as the restrictio~isoi'not violating other peoples' property
rights. In fact, there is no hann ill taxing the wealthy in order to prevent the poor froin
starving since thc resulting restrictions of freed0111on the wealthy can be vcry small
indeed. In short, libertarians need a way of defining freedom in such a way as to dissect
it from tile distribi~tionof property.
@ Libertarians also dcfine liberty as tlie 'absence of tile initiation.of force'. Again this
definition also does not help niuch. Force can be initiated in order to prolcct properly
rights, and property rights can be violated without initiating force (i.e. copyright
violations). Libertarians who use this definition cannot claim, as they would lilte to, that
they are always opposed to the initiati~nof force. Tliis amounts to saying that you are
allowed to act within yoilr rights without anyone initiating force against you. However,
this leads us baclt to the consequence of your propcrty rights detertilining the extent of
yous gmranteed freedom. What cietermit.les freedom is what the legitimate rights of an
individual are. Given the libertarian claim that the right to property is absolute, Freedom
and properly Iseconie one and tlie same. klaiiimerton calls this 'Propertarianislp'.
Moreover, non-coercion is not the absolute good: other values override it. For instance,
ollier things being eclual, it is not wro~lgto secure justice by coercion. And wlieri the
alternative to coercion is ~iori-inriovation,llien coercion to secure innovation is also
legitinlate. L,ibert:~rianssay that they believe in political fseedom. But even to simply
e~lforccthe principles of Free market. thc apparatus of a state would be necessary - an
army to prevent invasion, a police rorce to silppress intcrnal revolt and a judicial system.
*Most 1ik)ertarians go much fi~rther;they want a libertarian regime, a political system.
Sonw of tlieni have written corilpletc and detailed constitutions. But like any state, a
libertarian state will have to enforce its constitution - or it will reinslin a proposed
constitu~iori.Evcn if thc state is ibunded on Mars, sonleone else with different idcas will
probably arrive sometime. 'Thc libertarian constitutio~~ might work in a freshly eslablislied
1ibertari;ln colony, inhabited o~ilyby committed libcstarians. But sooner or later, thcrc
will be an opposition pcrliaps resoli~~lcly hostile to tlie Ibundiug principles. States which
fail to enli~rcethcir own political systcrii against opposition will ultilnately collapse or
ciis:1ppear. If Iibert~u-ianstatcs want to survive in sucl~circumstances, thcy will use political
repression agai~;sttheir internal opponents.
Critics ol' libertarianism also clailn that tlic redistribution of wealth is not wrong.
Libcltarians argue as if it was self-evidently wrong to steal the legitimately owned property
oftlie rich and give it to the poor. For example according to Nozick, the most important
right is tlie sight over oneself- the right ofself- ownership. It m a n s that 'what one owns
and what is owticd are one and tlie same and tlie whole person'. That is, if l own myseif,
thcn I own 111y talents and also what proceeds froin my talent. Elence, the denannd fi-r
redistribution taxation frorn the talented to the disadvantaged violate self-ownership.
how eve^; the egalitarians like Rawls believe that though a person is a legitimate possessor
of his talent, still talet1t.i~a matter of brute luck. Hence, the right over talent does not
include the right to accrue unequal rewards frorn the exercise of those talents. Those who
are naturally disadvantaged have a claim on those with advantages. 'The talented only
benefit from their talclit if it also benefits the disadvantaged. C)thers believe that
redistribution of wealth is inherently good; infact, it is a moral obligation o f the state,
Excessive wealth is ther'e to be redistributed; t-heonly issue is what is excessive. And, of
course, this may lead to coercion, but it is still not wrong,qot wrong at all.
The libertarian view that the libctaal welfare programriies by lilniting property rights i~nduly
limit pcoples' self-detei.lninatio11 is also not accepted by the egalitarians. Redistribution
programrnts do restrict the self-detenninatio~lof the well-offs to n limited degree. But they
also give real control over their lives to people who previously lacked. Liberal redistribution
does not sacrifice self-determination for some other goal. Rather, it aims at a fair distribution
of the means requireti for self-determination. The libertarian view allows undeserved
which h a m those who need help in sec~lringthose conditions.
inequalities in the distrib~~tion.
Malting a difference betweei.1 the libertasian image and the libertarian reality, one critic has
pointed out tliat: i) they believe in non-coerciol~and non -initiation of force, while in reality
libel-tarians Iegitiniise econornic~injusticeby refusing Lo define it as coercion or initiated force,
ii) they depend upon tile moral autonolny oftlie individual, while in reality libcttarians demand
tliat the individual accept the outcome oftlie tnarket forces, iii) it believes in political freedom,
but some for111of Jibertaria~~ government imposing libertarian policies on non-libertarians
would be riecessary, iv) libertarians condclnn existing states as oppressive, wliile at the same
time tliey use the political process in the existing states to implement their policies, and v)
they boast of the benefits of libertarianism , but they claim the right to decide for others what
colistitutes a 'benefit'.
17.5 SUMMARY
Libertarianism is a political pliilosophy ~vhichhas appeared in the last 20-30 years in the
United States. This is the political philosophy which lias been at the heart of the so- called
'New Right' whicll influenced the ThatcherlReagan administrations in the 1980s. Its important
exponents are F.A. Hayek, Milton Friedman, Karl Popper, T'$lmon, I, Berlin, M. Rothbard,
RobertNozick etc. its key concepts are as follows:
Inrlivi~lunlim:Libertarianisin sees the individual as the basic unit of social analysis. 01-11~
individ,als make choices and are responsible for their actions. It e~iiphasisesthe dignity ofthc
individual which entails both rights and responsibility.
1
Individual Rights: Because individuals are moral agents, they have a right to be secure in
their life, iberty and property. Tliese rights are not granted by the government or by the
society, they are inherent ill the nature of human beings. It is intuitively right that individuals
enjoy the security of such rights, the burden of explanation sliould lie with those who would
take rights away.
Spontaneous Order: A great degree of order in society is necessary for individuals to survive
and flourish. The great insight of libertarian social analysis is that order in society arises
spontaneously, out of tlie action of tliousrulds of individuals who coordinate their action with
those of others, in order to achieve their purposes. The niost important institutions of lium:~u
society ssuch as language, law, money and markets - all have developed spontaneously, witl~out
central direction. Civil society is another example oFspotitanet>usorder, thc associations within
the civil society are fornied for a purpose, but civil society itself is not an organizntion and
does not liave a purpose of its own.
Free Markets: 'To survive and to flourish, individuals necd to engage in econolnic activity,
The right to property entails the right to cxchange property by mutual agreements. Free tvlarkets
are tlie econornic system OF fi-ee individuals and they art: necessaty to create wealth. Libertarians
believe that people will be both fiee and more prosperous, if government intervention in peoples'
economic choices is ~ninimized.
Peace: Libertarians have always battled the age-old scourge of war. 'They understood that
war brougl~tdeath and destruction on a grand scale, disrupted family and economic life and
put more power i l l the hands of tlie ruling class - which might explain why the rulers did not
always share the popular sentinient for peace. Freenlen and women, of course have often had
to defend their own societies against foreign threats, but throughout history, war has ustlally
been the colnmon enenly of peaceful productive people on a1t sides of the conflicts.
In shorl, iibertarianisln contains the standard flamework ofmodern thought i.e. individualism,
private property, capitalism, eq~ialitybefore law and minimal state. I-fowever, it applies these
principles fully and co~isistentlyfar more so than most modem thinkers and certainly more so
than any modern government.
17.6 EXERCISES
1) Explain in yorrr own words the ineanirig of libe~.tarianism.
18.1 INTRODUCTION
For over the last two hu~ldrcdyears, Libcralisnz has beeti the lzzost dominant stralid it1 political
phitosopky. In its carliest incarnation, which is now called clslssical or negative liberalis~n(as
distinct kom its later versions as welfare or positive liberalisin and neo-libera1isn-1) it stood.
Inore than any thing else, for individ~~nl liberty. While as a political doctrine it was a defence
of certain inalienable ~ialuralrights of the individual, in its econo~nicdiine~isioriit stood for
luiss~z~firireor free-market ecotlomy. Because of these twin postulates of libernlism, it soon
became tlie ecorlolnic philosoplly of capitalism ain~edat protecting and pro~~~otitig the interests
of the bourgeoisie or the capitalist class. While on tllc one hand, it led to the cotlcentration of
capital in a few hands, oh the other, it cilln~i~~atecl in the alie~~aiionand exploitatiot~of ~ h c
proletariat (the working class). As a result of illis negative Pi11 out, liberalism became a target
of at$ack fko111dif'lkrent quarters, Tlie most virulent and systematic attack on classical liberillis~n
and laissez,fi~iwecoliolnics came fro111 Karl Marx, who went so far as to assert that the
worlting class could be redeemed froln its alienation and exploitatiori only by tlre revolutionary
overthrow of the wliole capitalist order. Because of the I~iglllypolemical nature of his political,
social and eco~~ornic phi losophyj the mamian ideas soon acquired the character of n powerful,
anti-liberal, political ideology which tias popularly come to be known as socialism or
communism. In fact, for about the last one Iiundred and liAy years, liberalism and lnarxism
have emerged as the two major contending ideologies each criticising, denigrating and attacking
tht: other. In this whole process, the theory and practice of Iiberalis~nas well as lnarxis~nhave
undergone several changes. So much so that many ofthe original marxian formulations have
been enriched, adapted arid even modified by the various post-Marx marxists. In this rcspect,
the contributions of V. I. I,enin and Mao Tse Tung (now Mao Zedong) have been most seminal
and noteworthy. This unit is aimed at fa~niliarzingyou with soine of the most significant
aspects of marxism, particularly with the ideas of Marx, Lenin and Mao.
These three have been tlle most proniinent theoreticians of mamism, each of whom has, in his
own unique way, dolninated the minds of millions of men and have changed the face of the
world during the twentieth century. While Marx laid the theoretical foundations of this change,
Leniri and Mao successfully modeled their respective societies - the erstwhile Soviet Union
and the People's Republic of China - by adapting the principles and postulates of marxist
theory to the conditions prevailing in their countries. In the process of doing so, they have
enriched the marxist theory and practice by adding various new dimensions and by offering
diverse i~~terpl-etationsto the original marxian formulations. Let us briefly look at the
contribution of each of the~n.
Marx's stay in London was also devoted to orga~iisingthe British and Frencli workers. In
1 864 he (alongwirli others) set LIPthe first major orgall isnt ion of' workers of Europc which
was niinied "l~ller~iatiorld Worlcing Men's Association (popularly Icnown 4s C.~omrn~~tiist
In~clnational).It remained :ictive up to I876 ancl its brightest hour was ill 187 1 when it succeeded
~ 1'~ri.s.
in setting L I tlie Commzt,~e.The WOI.I~L'~N of I3;iriscaptured tlic city ilnd rtiled it for nearly
two ~no~itlrs. Marx's C'lvil JVur in I;IYIIIL*Civrit1~11in 1871 i:; an cl:ibo~.ntion01' [he ai~iisanti
working of tlic P:it.is C'olnmune. After 1870, Marx was n~ostlyreacting to various political
developments which wcrc taltillg place i r r Ftiropc. I-le ufas critical of tliose con~rn~~nists wile
were supportilig sl:tte sociLtlismof'1,ass:ilt:. This criticism is ccmtaincd in his I'i.ificlric qf'tlrc
C;olhr, l'rog~+cr~~iinc
( 1 875).
As pointed o ~ labove,
t h/rn:~in his early ycnrs was nttrucied to I-icgclian iclealisrn, but under
Llie inlluonce ol' 1:cucrbach lie etiibraccd comniunism 01' tlie Iiuinanist variety which he
articulated in his 1;Ji'Ai.1 fe c:-iticizedcapitalis111bccause it leads to the alienation oi'labottr. It
is only il.1 cornm~lnisni111:lt lii~mnnbeings will be redec~icdiiwln this pl~enometlon.Alienation
is a very cornpic?: concept. Sometimes. it is equated with such conccpts as cslr.ungcme:.iif,
ol?jrct{ji<-nl'iottalld i*e!'ficcrrion.To put it in simple wol-ds, it i niplies de-hunt(miz~rtionor the
lo.s.ruj~.vclj:'The worker it1 a capitalist order works in a mechanical mal~nerand does not derive
;uiy pleasure fro111his work. I-]is labour becotnes a commodity which he rnust sell in order to
survive. 'Tllus, lie gets 2ilit.~ii~t~d from his work. FIe is also alielinted froin the groduct of Ilis
labour, from his fellow wot-kersand fiom the natitral world. Mnrx argued that in a capitalist
society, tlie worlter is alienated fro111tlie product 01' his labot~rbccnusc it docs not bclong to
Iiitii b~ttbelongs to soiiiebody else (tile capitalist). The competitive nati~reof capitalism also
alienates the worker li.otii liis fellow w~rlters.In essence, the worker is alienated from his
crcative potentialities that are cllaracteristic of Iiis species being. Mclrx advocated that it is
only in a cotiiniunist socicty tliat nia~iwill rct~~rti to liis real self as a fiee creative agent and Ihe
work will no more remain u mo~~otonous activity. Private property is the product and tlie
consequence ol'aliet~atedIaboi~rand, therefore, its abolition will lead to rede~nptiolioi'nian
from 1iis alielialecl state.
18.2.2 Historical Materialism
In rl~chistory of ideas there are three main explanations of how the human societies have
developed over the ages - the spiritucrlist interpretation, the idealist interpretation and the
rnulericilist interpretation. According to the first, all developlnents in Iiuman history are due to
divine dispensation or God's will. According to tlie second, it is tlie ideas that constit~~te the
niotor of hurnat~history. In other words, it is the developnlents of ideas that lead to
corresponding developnlents in all the domains of human activity. Tlie idealist interpretation
is associated mainly with Hegel (a German thinker who preceded Ivlarxj. According to the
third, which Marx expounded, all develop~net~ts in human history are due to changcs in the
material conditions of life. 111this unit, we are concerned only with the third, i.e., the materialist
inrerpretation wliich invcrtedtl~etlegelian idealist interpretation. In the idealist interpretation
i t is the PII~IILI
which is primary and mcrtler. secondary; while according to Marx's nlaterialist
interpretation, it is j71ulrc.r.which isprini~rrj) and the 117ind.secon~lc1rj~. The doctrine of historical
~i-iaterialismconstit~~tes tlie core of Marxian writings. It is tlie main theme of Marx's Cerrncm
Ideology. It seeks to explain all liistorical events in terms of changes occursing in tlie nrocle qj'
PI-otlzrclion. The cl~angt-sfrom ~~rirnilivc. co~nn?uni.srnto slavery, from slc~veryto feudalism,
~ ~ O I ~ I . J ~ Lto~capital
~ L I ~ism
~ Sand
I T -horn
I are al I explained
c~pi/iili.srnto socialisni and c011i111~~1iisln
i l l terrns of' changes in the material conditions of society and in the lives of individuals. Tlie
node of proditction consists of thejbrces or n1crrn.s qf'j~rocl~~ction (land, labo~lr,capital, ~nachine
tools and factories, etc.) and rclutiows qf'proc/z~zrcfions:slave-master, ~ e r ~ b a r o proletariat-
n,
capitalist. The economic structure ofeach society wliicll is constituted by relations of production
is the real jburrdtrtion oftliat society. It constitutes the bcue on wliicli rises the legal, political
and ideoIogical . s ~ ~ e r - s ~ r u cand
r ~ . to
~ rwhich
e correspond definite fornis ol'social consciousness.
This was quite the opposite of the Hegclian assertion tliat consciousness deter~uinesexistence.
Masx's tl~coryof historical materialism is also dialecticrzl. Marx borrowed the ifitrlcc/ical
method from Hegcl \vho had described all the liistorical changes in tertns of thesis, unli-thesis
~ r n Jsj~nthcsi~in the domaiti of ideas. An idea (thesis), according to Elcgcl, gives rise to a
counter-idea (anti-thesis) and finally their co~itradictionis resolved in a synthesis. 'This synthesis
itself acquires the s t a t ~ of
~ sa thesis and givcs rise to its anti-thesis which is again resolved in
a sytltt~esis,and tlie process goes on. It is important lo note that whereas Megel had applied the
dialectical tilethod in the domain of' ideas, Marx applied tlie dialectical method in explaining
tile n~atcrialworld. As sucl~,while the I-Iegelian positioli is cliaracterised as n'icrlccliccrl itleciii.sm,
tlislt of Marx is known a s ciiulecticcrl ntateriulisnz.
The 111odeof procluction or the way social production is orga~liscdin a society and tlie way
instsun~entsoi'production are used for sucl~production determines social, political, legal and
ideological character of society. At a certain stage, tlie forces of prod~~ctiollout-grow (develop)
beyond the relations ofproduction and gel O L Ioftune
~ with the existing rclations of production
wliicli fetter (hinder) the former's growth. 'This conlrrrefiction (opposition) between the forces
of production and relations of production leads to a c1~1,s.swur, i.e., a war between the class
which owns the means of production and the class which owns only labour power. Class war,
according to Marx, has been the tilost proniinent and recurring feature of all hulnan societies.
In the Coitrri~zrni.sth1~1r7ifhst0,Marx - Engels wrote, "tkc history of all hitherto existing society
is the 11istory of class struggles; freeman and slave, patrician and plebian, lord and serf, guild
niaster and jo~trrieynIan, in a word, oppressor and oppressed...". When this class war reaches
a high water niark,and contradictions become intense, it is resolved through a social revolution
wliich ensures newer and higher relations of production corresponding to the forces or means
of production. B L Iin~ due course, the forces of production again outgrow tlle relations of
production again necessitating a social revol~~tit~n. This process goes on. A marked feature of
a class-based society is that antagonis~n01. contradiction arises due to divergent economic
interests. In order to defend its class interest, the class owning the means ot' production
establishes its class rule. "No antagonism, no PI-ogress"asserted Marx. You can see from the
above argument that Marx's contelllion is that the state in a capitalist society is a vehicle of
class rille. It follows fro111this argument that if classes are abolished and a class-less society
comes about, then the state will become redundant and gradirally it will wither away.
18.2.4 St~rplusValue
AI~otherimportant theory that Marx enunciated is the theory of surplus value. It is with the
help ofthis concept that Marx explained the whole phenomeno~iofexploitation in the capitalist
society. To put it in si~npleterms, surplus value is what is norrnally called yrqfit. Marx's
argument is that the worlcer produces social objects which are sold by the capitalist for more
than what the worker receives as "wages". Thus, the worker is not paid for the whole of his
labour (or labour power) that he spends in producing the social commodities. Some part of his
labour is appropriated (or stolen) by the capitalist. The theory of surplus value is rooted in tlze
lubour thcorv r!f'vulrre i.e., that value of a cornnlodity depends on the amount of labour spent
in producing it. In other words, surplus value arises because some part of tlie worlcer's 1:lbour
is not paid to him. Marx further argued that it is only in class based societies that surplus value
exists because the bourgeois class exploits the proletariat. The bourgeoisie consists o f those
who own the mczrns ofproduction (land, capital and factories, etc.), while the proletariat
co~lsistsof [host: wlio own nothing but their labour powcr which they n ~ i ~sell s t in order to
survive. As the surplus value increases, tlic worker gets paid less and less. As pointed out
above, this gives rise to a sharp contradiction between the bourgeoisie and the proletariat
which is resolved finally in a proletarian revolution. 'This revolution will bring about the
demise of capitalism. The state power will be captured by the proletariat. After the capturc of
state power by the working class, Marx visualized a briel' period of Jicmtorshi~~ of the .
proletariat. It is during this dictatorship that the society would ~ ~ s hine rsociulism (where ecrch
will work nccording to c u ~ ~ n cundi p get accorcling l o work) and finally, commu~ism(where
each will work according to cnpucity and get according to need Thus, conlmunis~nis viewed
by Marx as a class less society orassociated producers.
Co~nrnunisinfor Marx was a society which revolutionary dictatorship oftke proletariat woi~ld
bring about after capitalis~nis overtlirown. It will also u~idertalcepositive crbolition qfjv-ii~ule
property and the abolition of:pri.vate ownership. In a cornmunist society, there will neither be
exploitation nor alienation. Coln~nunis~n for Marx is the return of man to himself from his
alienated condition. It is ~narkedby abolition of classes in society. This can only be done by
the proletariat by establishing its control oves the nieans of production. Once the society
becornes class-less, tlie state will no ~norcbe required. The capitalist state is a managing
-0mmittee of the bourgeoisie because it facilitates the exploitation of one class by another.
, herefore, in a classless society, the state will become redundant and it will wither away.
Such conditions, according to Marx, existed in ancient times i n the tribal societies.
Born at Sinibirslt in 1870 (April 22) Lenin had normal schooling. I-Iowever, when he was
taking Iiis final scliool exaniination at the age of 16 his elder brother (Alexander) was charged
of conspiring to kill tlie Tsar (King in Russia was known as Tsar) and was sentenced to death
by tlie Tsarist regime. Despite all the trauma that this event brought to Lenin, he secured the
liighest possible ~iiarksin the school examination. After school education, he joined the Kazan
IJniversity. It was during his stay at the University that Lenin began taking part in the various
s t ~ ~ d eagitations
nt which ultiniately led to liis expulsion fro111the University. Thereafter, he
involved himself fu1I y in revolutionary activities and soon became the leader of the Marxist
group at St. Petersburg. He was arrested in 1895 by the Tsarist regime and exiled to Siberia. It
was Iiere that he wrote his first major work -Development of Capitalism in Russia (1899). In
this work, he described how capitalism was growing in Russia during its initial phase. In 1900
he migrated to Geneva and joined Plakhanov's revolutionary group. He also started editing a
paper ~iamedIskcrra in which lie launched an anti-Tsarist campaign. In 1902, he wrote his
second i~nportantwork - Whcrt is to be done which deals with party organisation. In 1916
when the first world war had reached a very grim stage, Lenin produced Iiis most incisive
work Imperiulism, the I5ghest Stage of Cupitalism wherein he analysed the phenomenon of
imperialism. In October 1917, he assunied power in Russia. By doing so, Lenili earned the
credit for the first successfiil Marxist revoltltion and that too, in a capitalistically less developed
country like Tsarist Russia where feudalism was deeply entrenched. Soon after the success of
this revolution, Lenin started suffering froni fkequent strokes. His ill health forced him to
gradually withdraw from tlie active governance ofthe Soviet Union. However, during the few
years that lie lived after the sirccess of his revolution, he laid tlie foundation ofa socialist state
wliich his successor, Josepli Stalin, developed into a super power in a short span of time.
Having l-tlade the Communist Party as the vanguard of the proletariat, Lenin advocated a
certain type of organizational structure for the party. His thesis is popularly known as
'democratic centralis~n'.To put it i n simple words, democratic centralisni consisted of two
elements: democracy and centralism. It meant that the hierarchical strilcture of tlie Communist
party stio~~ldbe such that each higher organ of the party should be elected by the lower organ
and all the party matters should initially discuss freely at all the levels of the organisation,
from the lowest to the liigliest. However, once a decision has been taken by the highest organ
it sl~ouldbe imposed strictly on all t'he lower organs and all of the171 I I I U S ~abide by it. While
theoretically democratic centralisni has de~nocracyas well as centralism, in actual practice
the party became less and less denlocratic and more and 11iorecintralized. Like Iiis vanguard
thesis, Lenin"s views on democratic centralism were also criticized by several of his
conten~poraries.
Marx in his analysis of capitalisni had argued that in the task of over-throwing a~~tocl-acy and
I'eudalism, tlie boirrgeoisie plays a revolutionary role and brings about democracy and
capitalism. This is called the '1:)ourgeois democratic revolution'. It pirts the bourgeoisie into
power. Under the rille ciflthe bourgeoisie. capitalism would develop ti~rtlier.Finally, it would
reach a stage where the class contradiction betweer1 the bourgeoisie and tlie proletariat would
s o ~ i ~ l l irevolzltiotz
becoriie very sharp. ' h i s would create conditions for al~i'oletcrri~~ st which
woi~ldmark tho clttn~iseof capitalisn.1. This prediction of Marx, however, did not prove true
and the developnient of capitalisni in Europe did not lead to proletarian socialist revolutions.
Lenin tried to explain why the Marxian prediction about the proletarian socialist revolutions
and demise of capitalism had not conle true. Mow Iiad cslpitalisln received a lease of life. Mow
had capitalisn~failed in its historic ~iiission?Lenin in his Inzperiulisn-I:The FIiCq!ic.st Sfc~geof
C'c~pitolismtried to explain 1.1iis lease of life which capitalisin in tlie west had received.
Capitalism, in his view, had grown so much that raw material and domestic markets in the
capitalist coun tricl; were not enough to permit its fi~rtliergrowtli. 'rlierefore, it had become
necessary .for.these countries to find raw material and new ~narketsfor investment in Asia,
Afiaica and Soi~thAmerica. Thus, capitalisni was exported fioni Europe. It Iiad acquired a
non no pol is tic position and had beco~iiereactionary. Due to colonization of Asia, Africa and
South America, capitalism had acquired aparusitic position. Thus, capitalism had reached its
highest stage (imperialism) and had exhausted the historical mission of creating conditions
for a proletarian revolution in different capitalist countries. However, capitalism in its
i~nperialistmanifestation had created conditions for a socialist revolutio~lat the global stage.
The second proble~nfor Lenin was more serious. Since the revoliltion had occurred in Tsarist
Russia where capitalism was still unripe, the problem was to draw aplan for building a socialist
state. The pl-oblem got further co~npoundedbecause Marx in his writings had given a very
sketchy picture of the socialist stage and had not explained in detail how a socialist society
wou.ld conie about. Tlie C'apitalis~State, according to Lenin, emerged as an organ of class
rule. It was a special organisation of force and violence fix the exploitation of the working
class. This capitalist state had to be replaced by a socialist state. In his State and I?evulution,
L,enin offered some outlines of his strategy to built such a socialist state in Russia. E-Ie argued
that the bureaucratic ~nilitarystate was LO tre replaced by soviets modelled on the lines of tlie
I'asis Colii~nune.hloreover, he did not subscribe ¶i.lllyto the Marxist notion ofwithering away
of the state. Instead, he begrit1 to argue tliat during the transitional ph:ise, the comniunists
coillcl ilse the state apparatus to achieve their and econoniic goals. It r~ieantthat it
may be 1.rccessary to five wirh b mixed economy for so~netime(private and public sectors
could co-exist) till the public sector is strong enougli to take over the task of socialist
reconstruction. Only then the possibility ofwitherillg away of the state would be tllere.
Finally, the ICMI'arlnies drove out the rcvoli~tionarieswho took slielter in the north-west hills
of China, This escape became farnous as Mao's 1,017~-A4arch. This also nnade Man the
undisputed leader of the CPC, a position which he ~qaiiltait~cdtill his death. Mao's spay in tlie
north-west (Yanan Province) was the most fruitful period for the CPC. It was here that Mao
began an extensive study of Marxist philosophy. Mao is believed to have written two serious
pieces during this period; oiie titled "On Pructice" and the other called "On Contradiction",
both of which were published after the success of the Chinese revolution. In the 1940s, he
gave a blue-print of the future Chinese Government titled "New Democracy" (1 945). During
1942-43, Mao consolidated his position in the CPC by eliminating all his possible potential
rivals througl~a r~ctijicnlionccmzpaign. He also advocated a strategy of mass mobilizatio~lof
peasants which is known as Mao JsMass-linc.Here, he took a highly nationalist posture against
the Japanese invasion and tried to organise the Chinese people around the national sentiment.
He also refined his theory and practice of guerrilla warfare. The threat to Chinese security
during the secor~dworld war again bro~~ght the KMT and the CPC together. When the
cooperati011between the two finally ended in 1949, Mao became the head of the Chinese state
which began to be called the People's Republic of China (PRC). During the course of
reconstruction of the Chinese society, Mao gave a nod el different from the one envisaged by
Marx in his writings or the one attempted by Lenin in the Soviet Union. In the early 1950s,
Mao gave his famous call of "Let Hundred Flowsr.~Bloom" which allowed different view-
points in the CPC to be expressed fieely and openly. Later, he attempted collectivization of
agric~llturefollowed by a call for a Grecrt Leap Forwnrd to bring about quick transition to
c o m ~ n i ~ n i sin~ nChina. These attelnpls of Mao did not fully succeed, which generated some
resentnlent and even opposition to Mao's Inanage~nentof the economic agenda. Mao tried to
figlit this opposition on an ideological plan]<and gave a call for a Cultural Revoltition in 1966.
This was an attenipt at re-charging the revolutior~aryzeal of the CPC cadres. He reinained
wedded to this idea till his death in 1976 (September 9).
18.4.2 Contradictions
In Marxist theory, the main vehicle of all changes in society is contradiction. Mao further
elaborated this idea. For him, contradictions or the unity of opposites (thesis and anti-thesis)
leading to a higher level and transforming q~~antity
into quality (synthesis) was the filndamental
law of historical development. But he did not fully endorse the Marxist position o n
contradiction. it may be mentioned that Marx, in his writings, seems to have used the terms
contradictions and antagonis~nsalmost interchangeably. I-Iowever, Lenin began to distinguish
between the two. He expressed the view that contradictions would remain even in a socialist
society, but antagonisms would not. Mao ilnlnensely enriched the debate. In his famous essay
titled "On Contradictions (1937), he formulated the notions of nntagol7isiic contradictions
and non-antagonistic contrudictions. According to him, antagonistic contradictions are those
which can be resolved peacefillly. In his 'On Correct Handling of Contradictions' (1 957) Mao
further elaborated this view. He argued that the contradictions between the peasantry and the
proletariat were non-antagonistic; the contradictions between the peasantry and the proletariat
on one hand, and the petty bourgeoisie on the other were non-antagonistic; the contradictions
belween the peasantry, the proletariat and the petty bourgeoisie on the one hand and the
national bourgeoisie on the other were non-antagonistic. Contradictions between the various
cotn~n~lnist parties were non-antagonistic, but contradictions between the Chinese people and
the compradore bo~~rgeoisie were antagonistic. Contsadictions between the socialist and the
capitalist camp were antagonistic. Contradictions between colonial countries and in~perialis~n
were antagonistic. He also argued that at any one point oftin~c,onc contradiction becotnes the
principul contrtrdiction whereas the other contradictions become nlinor. Further, he argued
that even a principal contradiction has a principal aspect and several minor aspects. For example,
in the era of irnperialisln the contradiction hclw~~enl the imperialist camp on one hand and the
socialist camp and colonial countries on thc D ~ ~ P CisI . ,a principal contradiction and contradiction
between the Soviet Union and the US was a ljril~cipalaspect of this principal contradiction.
However, he also added that which contratlictinn is to be treated as antagonistic and principal
and which as minor and non-antagonistic or whic1-1aspect is to be treated as principal wo~tld
be contingent on relative liistorical tactical considelxtions.
18.4.3 On Practice
This elaboration of contradictions led l\/lac>to t;,cpound his epistemology or theory of knowledge.
In his farnous essay titled, On Practice (I 9'73) Mao argued that all knowledge of the real
world comes to us through concrete investigntion and empirical analysis. I-le was opposed lo
mere book learning or i~lt~litive theorising. For example, if one wanted to understand the
Chinese society, then one must un(erstand its class s t r i ~ c t ~ ~its
r c pattern
, of land ownersl.lip
and the impact of imperialism on the local economy of China. Theory without continuous
reference to erllpirical reality woilld become a tilere dogma. I-lowever, he visualized two
stages in the ilnderstanding of empirical reality: The Perceptiral .s.trgc, and The Concepttlul
Stage. At the perceptual stage, we only get the impression of reality through our senses. This
sense perception has to be compounded into conceptual knowledge. For exalnple, when one
looks at tlie empirical reality of rural China, it is only the perceptual stage of knowledge. But
having seen this reality, one lias to understand it in ternis of different stratas of peasantry:
landless, marginal, sn~all,middle and big farlmmers etc., that is tlie conceptual stage.
Mao realized that the peasantry in China was not strong enough ta win the revolutionary
struggle against ilnperialis~nand feudalisru. Therefore, it was necessary to seek the help of
the other classes of Chinese society. It was in this context that Mao emphasized the concept of
a United Front. It was seen as an alliance between different partners who Iiad some common
interest like opposition to irnperialisln. The nature of such a United Front woilld depend on
the historical situation. Its object would be to pursue tlie resolution ofthe principal contradiction.
Such a United Front strategy was elnployed by Mao by establishing the alliance of Chinese
yensuntry with the proletariat, the petty bourgeoisie and even the nationul bourgeoisie. It
also intendcd 1:Iie non-party elemevits among the Chinese intellectuals. The United front had
to be a broad alliance ofthe Chinese people against Japanese i~nperialismand western powers.
In pursuance of his United Front strategy, Mao gave a caIl in 1940 for a new democratic
republic of China. It was to be a state under tlie joint dictatorship of several classes. In 1945,
lie proposed a state system which is called New Democ~ucy.While the united front consisted
of an ovcrwhelrning majority of the Chinese people, the leading position in the allianck had to
be in the hands of the working class. It meant that the petty bo~~rgesisie and the national
bot~rgeoisieworcld not ot~lybe partners in the United Front, they would also be partners of the
ruling alliance, but they had to be onlyjunior partners. He called such a state as the 'People's
Democratic Dictatorship'. It was a cornbinatio~iof two aspects - denzacracy for the people
and dictatorship over the 'enemies of the people' or the 'running dogs of imperialism'. In
ccmcrete terms, it meant that the Chinese democratic state would incorporate the peasantry,
the working class, tlie petty bo~lrgeoisieand the national bourgeoisie in the ruling alliance. In
doing so Mao deviated from tlie classical Marxist notion of thc diclatorship of the proletariat.
In fact, he combined Marxis111and nationalism.
18.5 SUMMARY
In this unit, we have discussed the founder arid two prominent advocates ol'Marxism: Marx,
1,enin and Mao. We have discussed Marx's theory ofalienation, historical materialism, surplus.,
value, clnss war and revolution. Broadly, Marx's views on the state, dictatorship of the
proletariat :111d the socialist society are also mentioned. This is followed by a discussion of
Lenin's ideas on party organisation and democratic centralism, his theory of itnperialistn and
liis views on the nature of'the post-revolutionary state. Lenin's views about selectivity of
place and time of revolution as against the Marxist view about spontaneity are also discussed.
Finally, h4ao's views about classes in tlie Chinese society, his notion of peasant revolution,
liis views on contradictions atid new de~nocracyare discussed. Maoist notion of antago~iistic
and non-antagonistic contradictions is an important contribution ta the Marxist theory. In
addition to it, his advocacy of 'let hicndred flowers bloon~'and 'great leap forward' is also
discussed.
imperialism which was the last stage of capitalism. Lukacs, Gramsci and the Frankfurt School
offered other answers to explain this phenomenon. Lukacs argued that for the overthrow o f
capitalism, the mere existence of the proletariat class was not enough as Marx had argued;
this proletariat must also acquire revolutionary consciousness. He was critical of the view that
Marxism was like physical sciences. He criticized Engel's argument that human behaviour
was governed by dialectical laws. He also criticized $ngels for applying dialectics to the
social world, because the interaction of subject and obje& in the social world is not the same
as in the natural world. He went on to say that thought does not merely mirror or reflect the
physical world sans mental activity. He rejected the Marxian theory of dialectical materialism.
Likewise, Gramsci questioned the very Marxian view that the economic base determines the
ideological political superstructure. He tried to explain how one class maintains its hold on
the other. He argued that the.rule of one class over the other does not depend merely on the
economic and physical power, it depends on the ability of the ruling class to impose its social,
cultural and moral valzres on the ruled. Thus, while Lukacs emphasized the role of consciousness
instead of material forces, Gramsci highlighted the role of cultural aspects instead of the
economic base determining the super structure.
Lukacs carried out a philosophic revisionism of Marxism. He questioned several key aspects
of Marxism, Leninism. He attacked historical ~naterialisniwhich is tlie very basis of Marxism.
He argued that it was vulgar Marxism to say that a set of economic laws will determine
whether the situation was ripe for revolution or not. He asserted that material conditions in
thernsclves cannot change history. Socialist revolution is not a consequence of sharpening of
just contradictions of capitalism. It is only when a class becomes conscious of these
contradictions that revolutiollary change occurs, TI-tus, he emphasized the creative role of
11uman consciousness. In the previous unit, it was pointed out that according to Marx, it is the
sharpening of contradictions between the forces or means of production and relations of
production that leads to changes in societyi Lukacs reversed this argument. He asserted that
contradictions between means and relations of production (which is a objective fact) cannot
itself bring about any change in society, unless there is a Iiuman subject (proletariat class)
which grasps this contradiction. To put it in other words, Lulcacs did not accept the basic
Marxian position that matter isprimary and mind secondary. Mere fact that there is exploitation
and alienation of the proletariat class is not enough to bring about a revolution; rather it is
only when the proletariat class becomes conscious of this alienation and exploitation that
revolution would talce place. Thus, Lukacs tool<a semi-Hegelian or quasi Hegelian position.
It allnost anzounted to saying that mind is primary and matter secondary. In fact, Lukacs
seeins to agree with the Marxian thesis of Feuerbach that the essential element in historical
evolution is not contradictidn, but prolctariatYsawareness about this contradiction which it
acquires when engaged in resolving it. Further, the proletariat's consciousness about this
contradiction is not direct, but only through its having experienced alienation. Lukacs, argument
is that in the socia! world (unlike the natural world) there are no objective historical laws
which are not subject to human control.
The above position of Lukacs also amourlts to a denial of Lenin's thesis about the role of the
Comnzunist Party as the vanguard of the proletariat, because he maintains that such
revolutionary consciousness will not come to the proletariat through some internzediary, but
directly by experiencing alienation and exploitation. Consciousness in this way does not remain
a super-structural category as in Marx. In Lenin's position as stated in What is to be Done
( I 902), the proletariat can acquire revolutionary consciousness (awareness about the need to
overtlirow capitalism) only by relying on outside elements (professional revolutionaries) who
have a clear awareness of historical evolution which the proletariat cannot have on its own.
The Colnmwnist Party, in Lenin's argument, represents a suitable mechanism for imparting
such revolutionary conscious~~ess to the proletariat; but for Lukacs the proletariat must acquire
this consciousness about its class position without any outside help. To a question as to how
the proletariat will acquire sucll revolutionary consciousness, Lukacs' response was that it
would come through Workers' Councils and not by the party organisation as Lenin had
maintained.
In classical materialism, consciousness is considered a mere reflection of reality and the only
valid category is totality which can be grasped by the dialectical method alone. Lukacs calls
it the "reflective" or copy theory 0.f knowledge which apprehends a false objectivity. This is
a very cornplex argument of Lukacs. He is saying that to stop at the reality of a mere object is
to grasp only at tlie appearance of things. According to him, the revolutionary praxis of the
PI-oletariatenables it to have. a new and higher form of consciousness. When tlie proletariat
begins to see Illat in capitalism, it Izas become a mere conimodity or a mere objecr, it ceases to
be a mere co~n~nodity and a mere object. It beco~nesa subject (agent of cl~ange).Thus,
comprehension of this reality enables it to change this reality. Lukacs further argued that
object and subject (being and consciousness) are not related to each other as .base and ,sz4pept
structvre, but co-exist in a single dialectic. In other words, while Marx had argued that it is
the nlaterial conditions of society which change history, according to Lukacs consciousness is
not a si~nplereflection of the process of history, but it truly is an agent by which history may
be transformed. While consciolisness is aprodzrct of material conditions, it is also tlie driving
.force by which material conditions may be changed. While the orthodox Marxian position
states that the proletariat's conditions of existence determines their conscioz~ssne.s.s,Lukacs
tiiaintains that the proletariat's consciousness would change their conditions of existence.
Thus, conscio~~sness is the most decisive factor in the self-liberation of the proletariat. It is
through tlie acquisition of revolutionary consciousness that the proletariat transforrns itself
fro111 a 'C~LI.T.Sin it.reCf to a 'class for itself', from an object of history to a. subji;ct of fiistory.
Gra~nsciwas born in a poor f;t~nilyin Snrdina which was the poorest region of Italy. His father
was arrested for embezzlement when Granisci was a small child and sentenced to five years
imprisonment. In his absence, the family lived in utter poverty because of which Gratnsci
suffered physical deformity and became a hunchback. After some elementary education,
Gramsci started working in an office. In 191 1 he won a scholarship and joined Turin University.
At Turin, he noticed that there was a lot of difference in the standard of living in the rural
areas of Italy and its cities. While at the university, he got associated with the Italian Socialist
Party. By and by he was attracted to Marxist ideas. He was also influenced by Corce's emphasis
on the role of cu1tur.e and thozrght in the development of history. It was this idea of Cqrce
which provided the historical framework within which Grarnsci carried out his adapiation of
Marxian ideas. In 191 4-1 5 he attended a series of lectures on Marx which made him particularly
interested in the problem of relation between the base and the super-structzae. He began to
engage himself in the workers' movement. When the Italian Communist Party was founded
in 1921, Gramsci became one of its foundi~igmember. Soon, he became its General Secretary
and was also elected to the Italian Parliament. He was arrested in 1926 in the wake of the rise
of fascism and remained imprisoned till his death. During his prison life he wrote on several
topics. These writings were published later as l)ri,ron Notebooks. It is these Notebooks of
Gramsci which made him a great theoretician of Hegelian Marxisrn (alongwith Lukacs). His
other ma-jol-work is Modern Prince and other writings.
Gratnsci's Pri.ro)z Nolebooks and Modern Prince and Other Writings deal with diverse issues
of politics, history, culture and philosophy, but in this i~nitwe will refer to only some ofthem:
his notion of hegemony, his views about the role of intellectuuls, hisphilosophy qfPr.axis and
his analysis of relations between the base and the szper-structure. Out of ail these, his notion
of hegennony is considered to be the most significant and original contribution of Granisci. In
tlie previous unit, it was pointed out that in all societies there are two classcs: the class which
owns the means of productio~iancl the class which owqs only labour power. The class which
owns the means of production establishes its rule ovcr (he class which owns labour power and
exploits it. Thus, in the Marxian scheme, the capitalist statc is the managing cornmittce ofthe
boul-gcoisie, wliich facilitates and legitimizes the exploitative processes in the society. It is
the econolnic power (or the ownership of means of productioi~)that enables the ruling class to
remain in power. Gralnsci contested this Marxian position. He argued that the ruling class
maintains its domination in diverse ways includi~igtlic use oj'jiorce, use of its economicpower
and the conqent of the ruled. in other words, the bourgeois class maintains its domination not
merely by force, b ~ in~several
t nun-coercive ways. Two si~chnon-coercive ways prominently
come out in his writings. One of them is the ability of the ruling class to irnposr-: its own values
and belief systerns on the masses. Gramsci argued that the ruli~igclass uses various processes
of socializatioi~to impose its own c~llti~re on the r ~ ~ l eThe
d . ruling class atternpts lo C~IIII'OI the
minds of men by imposing its own cultuse on thein in several subtle ways. So, cuilz~~.rri/?egemo~)~
of the r1.1iingclass is the basis of its r ~ ~ l i npower.
g Secondly, he argues that the ruling class
does not always zvosk for its narrow class interest. in order to maintain its ruling position, it
enters into con~pru~i~ises and alliances with other groups in societies atld creates a historic
bloc. It is this strategy of creating a social bloc which enables the ruling class to get the
consent of the ruled. You will notice that this argument of Gramsci is completely at variance
with t1.1~orthodox Marxian position in wliiclz the class rule of the bo~~rgeois is justified on the
basis bf its control of means of,production. In oetler words, in the Grarnscian argument the
role of iileax and czrllure become central instead of tlie economic factor. Secondly, Cra~nsci's
explanation of dominance oTthe ruling class in terms of its co~~lpromises arid alliances with
other allies ~lnderplaysthe orthodox Marxian position in which the state is viewed nzerely as
the nza~aagingcommittee of the bourgeoisie. So ~nrlchso that Grarnsci also suggested a system
of alliances for the working class to enable it to overtllrow the bo~~rgeois rule. tie emphasized
the need for creating ii llistoric bloc.
I-lerc n question arises as to how does the ruling class establisl~its hegemony in society?
Gramsci argued that it does so with the help of intellectuals. But he added that intellectuals
coi~ldalso play a significant tole in thcl: tcvolutionary trstnsforrnation of society. He argiled
thrtt intellectuals provide a philosophy tbr the masscs so tkat rtley i-io not questiot~the rrrling
,
I
position of the bourgeoisie. I n this respect, Grarnsci cnlked u f two categories ofiritellectuals:
I
11-cru'itioncrlinrellcctuals: nnld orglrnic intcllcctuals. l'he former largely refers to those who
thinlc thclt they are not linked to any class. In this se~Tsc,they are independent. Organic
intellect~~nls, OII t l ~ e
otl.rcr ha~id,are those who are actively and clusely associated either with
the rilliizg class or with the masses. 'Those who are associated with the rulil~gclass chum out
ideas, wlziclz helps in legitimizing the rule ofone class ovel. the otlter. 'I'hose who are associatecl
I
with the I.nasses work for ;lnd provide leadership to bring about revolutionary change it? society.
Such i~ltellectualsemerge from within the working class.
19.3.4 Relations between the Base and the Super-Structure and the
Notion of Historic Bloc
It was in 1914-1 5 when Gramsci attended some lectures on Marxism that he got interested in
the problenl of relations between the base and the super-structure. You would recall that Marx
had expressed the view that no society can undergo any transfor~nationtill necessary and
sufficient conditions for such transformation are already there. One form of society cannot be
replaced by another, unless it has developed all forms of life which are inherent and implicit
in its economic relationship. In the Critiqzre ofPolitica1 Economy, Marx had stated that "no
social order ever perishes before all the productive forces for which there is room in it have
developed; and new higher relations of production never appear before the material conditions
for their existence have matured in the womb of old society". For Marx, the economic order
of society constituted the base and the political order constituted the super structure, The
nature of super structure depended on the nature of the economic base. Gramsci modified this
Marxian position. He talked of a historic bloc. The historic bloc for Gramsci was a situation
when both objective and subjective forces combine to produce a revolutionary situation. It is
a situation when the old order is collapsit~gand there are also people with will and historical
insight to take advantage of this situation. The union of base and super-structure, material
conditions and ideologies, constitute the historic bloc. In other words, even when the material
forces have reached a point where revolution is possible, its occurrence would depend on
correct intellectual analysis in order to have a rational reflection of the contradictions of the
structure. e.
In vulgar Marxism, the super-structure i.e., ethics, laws, philosophy, art and the whole realm
of ideas is directly conditioned by the economic system, by means of production and exchange.
Material conditions determine man's consciousness' Gramsci criticized this view. Like Lukacs,
he argued that revolution and preparations for it would i~lvolveprofound changes in the
consciousness of masses. Dialectics in the physical world are different from dialectics in
society. In physical nature, it is the backlash of physical forces but in society, it is a moment
in which men contribute to becoming a deliberate force in the dialectical process. Thus, it is the
moment when sub-structure and szryer-sfrztctzlue interact on each other lo produce a historic
bloc.
You must have noticed that there is a lot in co~nlnonbetween Lukacs and Gramsci. Both
emphasized the role of cultural and philosophical factors in understanding historical materialism
of Marx. Both brought out the element of Hegelian idealism in Marx. Both attached greater
importance to consciousness than to material forces. Both saw the rclationship between the
base and the super str~icturein a new light.
At the very outset, you must understand the context in which they wrote and the issues which
bothered them. They wrote in a period which was marked by the rise ofNazism (in Germany)
and Fascism (in Italy). Moreover, the rise ol'Stalinisn~in the Soviet Union with its totalitarian
thrust was a cause of serious concern for them. They were also aware of the failure ofcommunist
movements in western Europe. They were critical of all ideologies because ideologies do not
offer a true account of reality. They were particularly critical ofthose ideologies which attempt
to conceal arid legitimize systems of exploitation and domination. Through critical analysis
of such ideologies, they wanted to trace the hidden roots of domi~~ation in them. By doing so,
they tried to create true consciousness among the inasses and prepare them for revolutionary
action. TIILIS,their goal like Marx is revolutionary transformation of society, but in a different.
way.
They were critical of cultilral and social philosophies and practices which aim at offering a
false escape from monotonous every day life under capitalism, or'whict~advocates the idea
that inequalities are not man-made, but natural or have corne from God.
19.5 SUMMARY
In the foregoing pages, we have discussed three major streatns in Marxism which have been
witnessed during the twentieth century; those associated with Lukacs. Gramsci and the Franltfurt
School. While they do differ with each other in matters of detail, there are some common
elements in all the three of them. For example, they underplay the Marxian doctrine of historical
~uaterialismwhere the economic base detern.lines the super-structure. Instead, they emphasize
the role of human consciousness and will (Lukacs) and c~rlturalaspects (Gramsci and Frankfitst
School). All the three attempt to explain why bourgeois r~ileand capitalism have not been
overthrown as Marx had predicted. Why is it that despite the existence of a large proletariat
class in several societies, revolutionary change has not occurred? In their search for answers
to these questions, they found that the mere existence of the proletariat class is not enough for
a revolution to occur; this proletariat class must acquire the necessary revolutionary consciousness.
They also found that ruling classes are able to maintain tlieir hegemony and domination by
various subtle methods like imposing their cultural nouns, their beliefs and values on the masses.
It is the responsibility of intellectuals to guide the masses in this respect. They also explained
how and by what methods the authority structures of domination are legitimized in order to
ensure stability ofthe system.
*
19.6 EXERCISES
1) What is the main contri b ~ ~ t i oofnLultacs to the Masxist theory?
2) What did Gralnsci mean by hegemony'? In what way did lie modify the orthodox Marxian
position?
3) What is meant by the Frankfurt School? What critique of liberal and socialist societies
did it offer?
UNIT 20 SOCIALISM
Structure
20.1 Introduction
20.2 'The Doctrine of Social Progress, individualism and Capitalisnl
20.3 Socialism: Meaning and Early Strands
20.4 Karl Marx and Socialistn
20.5 Critiques of Marxis111and Democratic Socialisin
20.6 Exercises
20.1 INTRODUCTION
In this unit, we will discuss the following issues: What is it that calls forth the need for
socialism? And, what is socialism? Socialis~nis a set of doctrines or a cluster of ideas and a
political programme that emerged at the beginning of the 19th century. It arose out of a revolt
against bourgeois property. PI-operty in all "civilized" societies Iias been considered sacred.
(Exceptions were c'pri~~litive"communities also known as tribal.) In bourgeois society, it
loses it sacredness but gets,a new type of sanction; it now becomes an inalienable right.
(Inalienable is anything which cannot be separated from the person, so~netl~irig entrenched
with the individual.) What then are the implications of property rights as inalienable?
One lnain objective ofthe state is taken to be to ensure the liberty ofproperty. Right to private
property has been regarded, by much ofthe liberal theory, as the key to liberty ofthe individual
and to the pursuit of his happiness. To John Locke, the father of liberal view of society, right
to "life, liberty and property" is a natural right and human beings enter into a contract to
create a state for the protection of this right. Froin then on, through Adam Smith to Jererny
Bentha~nand the modern proponents ofcapitalism (which now has taken an aggressive posture
under globalisation in our times) the institution of private property has been politically
sacrosanct and an esse~~tial condition of social progress.
I
to be faced, lead to social good. This means that general social welfare will be the result of
I individual ~naxi~nization of interest. This prevailing view ofthe new Inan was well captured
I
by Alexander Pope i n the following verse:
'Thus God or nature formed the general frnrnc
And bade self-love and social be the same.
I
We all know Ada111Smith's oft quoted maxim ofthe "invisible hand." Everyone is not only a
~naxin~izer of self-interest, but is an infinite appl'opriator and an infinite consumer of goods of
every kind. Property is the measure of man and in a capitalist society, whichever way one
looks at it, all routes converge on property and through it the individual's pursuit of his
happiness. What we get, as a picture of man under such a social arrangement is an egoistic
person, dissociated from all other individiials and all by himself in a space called the market
place.
This extreme individualism is best captured in the words of John Locke, the father philosopher
of liberalism. He says, the state exists to promote civil interest and "civil interest I call life,
liberty, inviolability of body, and the possession of such outward things as Money, Lands,
Houses, Furniture and the like." ('A Letter Concerning Tolerance'). I-Ie then argues that "Though
the earth .. . be comnlon to all men, yet everyman has a 'property' in his own 'person'. This
nobody has a right but himself." (Two Treatises of Government, Ch.: 'Of Property'.) It is
clear in the above statenlent that ,bol.~rgeoisproperty is exclusively individual and that it
legitimates the exclusion of others from it. (In feudal property, other members too had
entitlements on the fi~litsorpropetty.) In this view of things, these is no sense of an individual's
social obligation to others or of sharing in the benefits of a social system in the creation of
which people cooperate together. In any co~nplexsystem, even property is the result of the
common exertions of people, but its possession is always exclusively private. The common
good is identiiied with the individual good. The individual good is each man for hi~nself,The
state has the function to ensure that those who succeed in acquiring property have full protection.
All the means of production (land, factory, raw material, tools and instrument and such other
things which go into the production of riccessities of life & otlier goods) in such a society are
privately owned. And tl~eseget, as history shows, concentrated in fewer and fewer hands as
capitalist production is based on (increasing) accumulation. This has two very important
consequences for society. First, a11 decisions about investment choices -which co~nmodities
to produce and in what quantities - is determined by a s~nallgroup of people who own these
mealis of productio~i.Whether the comn~odityis socially beneficial or not is not the main
consideration. What determines the investment choices is whether effective demand can be
created. Tn other words, profitability of goods is the sole consideration in the making of choices
about investment. Whether luxury cars will be produced when there is a crying need for buses
-public transport - is left to be decided by the profit motive of the individual entrepreneurs;
same is the case whether guns or bonlbs shoiild have precedence over the urgent need to have
a hospital or a scl~ool.Production in society is without any plan and oHen can be of a wasteful
nature; expensive fatless potato cliips can score over the need for cheap bread which ordinary
people may badly require. Distribution i'ollowing fi.0111the above investment choices for wrong
kind of com~noditiesgoes or1 regardless of social need or urgency of one who can pay.
Secondly, such an economic system or niode of psoduction creates a class freed from social
and legal obligations to perf'orm labour. This is the class of capitalists. It stays out of the
labour process and iniposes the burden of'p~-oductivelabour on the rest of the society. So we
have a large part of society, a majority, who live solely on their wages which in turn are
determined by the cost of reproducing the laboils power of the person as well as theldelnand
and supply of labour. We, thus, find that the capitalist society is sharply divided between
those who own the capital and otller ~neansof production and those who have no hing but
f
empty hands and sell this labour power undcr conditions whicll are loaded against them. Just
look around the world to see the truth of this statement.
A society with such a class division cannot respect the person who labours. One who labours
is dispossessed as he just survives on the wages he receives. Property and possession is the
basis of esteem. All the econoinic privileges, social predominance and prestige are with those
who own the nieans of production, the capitalists. All of these social assets are means to and
provide immediate access to political power. That is why the bourgeoisie in capitalist societies
have rightly been called the ri~lirlgclass, the class with the power to determine the main
features of any capitalist society. In.sun1, we can say that class determines the structure of
society, which in turn conditions tlie values, attitudes, actions, and the overall articulation of
any civilization.
So when we talked in the beginning that socialism has been a revolt of sorts against bourgeois
property, it was not just property per se, but the entire system of production and government
that the boi~rgeoispro1,erry gives rise to and imposes on the rest of the society.
Early socialism did not grow into any clear-cut doctrine, but a set of values and beliefs held
together by the view that private ownership of production should be replaced. But there was
110 unanimity about "replaced by wllat." There were comnlon cLlrrents of tliinl<ing that some
or other fonu of comrnon ownership of productive property should be the basis of social
organisation of socieLy.
Socialism is not against property per se. For example, ow11inga flat or a refrigerator or driving
i1-1 one's own car does not militate against the spirit of socialism. All these are consumable
iterns. When socialis111 talks against the private ownership ofproperty, it means si~cliproperly,
which is productive and yields profit, or rental income; that is, tlie private ownership of m a n s
of' production. Early socialists thought that property is tl~eft.This coines to mean that the
owners of nieans of production cheat the worlcers - the direct producers - of whatever.
prodilction whic1-1takes place over and above the wages paid to them. This denial of what they
produce is theft. The accumi~lationofthis theft is property in the form we see it in our societies.
Being a theft it is 111ora1lyunacceptable. So it must be abolished and as a form, private ownership
lnilFt be converted into one or another form ofcomlnon ownership.
The later socialists did not consider property as a theft, but viewed it as the appropriation and
acc~im~~lntion of the s u r p l ~ ~value
s that the worker produccs. This process is built into the
labolls process, which produces goods for exchange in the market. It is, therefore, internal and
structural to the capitalist process and this is also instituted in law and is therefore, legal. So it
cannot be @,but is e x g l o i t a t i ~and nevertheless remains, from a normative point of view,
illegitimate and unacceptable. Therefore, they agreed with the early socialists that it 1ii~1st
abolished and colnlnon social ownersl~ipinstituted. This common notion aboirt the unwelcolne
nature of private ownership of the means of production and following on that, the idea of one
o r another forin of common ownership is what unites the socialists, anyone who agrees with
these views is a socialist, whatever else their differences. This comlnon outlook is well sumlned
up in the following words. Socialisln is:
Within these broad agreements, it is the differences about (a) how does one replace capitalisin
and (b) what exactly is the version ofsocial ownership, which, create so many different schools
o f socialism. There is finally the all important question of how does one arrive at socialism; in
other words, who will bring it about. In lookingat these questions, we will know the different
versions or schools of socialisl~i.
I11 the aftermath ofthe French Revolution of 1789, two important features changed in the way
people related to the world. The French revolution put into the shape of political agenda, the
theories of Enlightenment and it furthermore, enthroned the value of equality (and fraternity)
a s of the same importance as liberty and thus, egalitarianism became a creed with the masses.
The second m o ~ ~ ~ e n tdevelopment
ous was the fast emerging working class all over western
Europe in the wake of the Industrial Revolution, a class large and growing in number but
living in deep ~nisery.
Early socialist11 grew as a popiilar lnovelnent with a festive play of ideas. The earliest of the
voices were those of Robert Owen (1771-1858), Saint - Silnon ( I 760-1 825), Charles Fourier
(1772-1837) and Proudhon (1809-65) and many lesser figures. But it was only with Karl
Marx (1 81 8-1 883) that a general theory of socialisln emerged which could rival those of
Adam Sniitli or Ricardo about capitalism. The ideas and prescriptions of these men were very
different, but there was a general >accent,which was common. An emphasis on social as
against individual, cooperation as against selfisl-~ness
or egoism, cooperative activity as against
competition; they all agreed private ownership and tnarket coinpetition is bad for colnmon
good and that inspite of large increases in production, there has been no social progress.
Social progress as society-wide happiness can come about only with the relnoval oftlie criteria
o f profit and its replacement by a system of rewards based on rnoral adequacy of claims.
Robert Owen was the first to use the word Socialist in 1827 in his Cooperative Magazine. He
was a self-made Scottish Cotton Manufacturer who believed Industry-Factory could work as
the liberator of mankind from poverty and ignorance. This could happen only if, as he showed,
production is organised on cooperative principles and not on competition. He carried on inany
experiments in cooperative organisation of production. On a nation wide scale, only the state
could do it. He also believed thai human nature could be transformed, ifenvironlnent could be
reconstructed. In this reco~lstrilctedenvironment, edilcation would be a powerful conditioning
influence. He also advocated the formation by public authorities of "villages of cooperation"
to put the unelnployed to work. He looked at cooperation not merely as a better alternative to
competition in production, but also looked at it as a way for moral itnprovement of human
beings. Owen was also a strong advocate of the right to work. He addressed tnemorials to the
heads of states of Europe in 1817 urging them to implement his new proposals so that an 'age
of plenty' coi~ldbe ushered in for the Iiu~nanrace. He ideas caught the imagination of the
working classes in Britain who nioved on to build popular movements around his ideas leading
e v e ~ ~ t u a lto
l y the formation of trade unions which in his times, were considered illegal.
A different socialist vision emerged from Charles Fourier who came from a merchant family
made impoverished during the French Revolution. Waste, inefficiency, boredom, and inequality
of modern work appalled Fourier. His main interest was in making work pleasant and adjusted
to the character of the individual. Therefore, he found division of labour unacceptable because
it broke up work into niinute repetitive operations. Unlike Robert Owen, h e did not believe in
the efficacy of big industry. Work should be concentrated in the countryside and small shops
in towns where family life can be lived in coni~nunitiesand where all can know each other.
~ b r can
k be varied and enjoyable only if competition is eliminated and organised in
cooperatives of sn~allproducers. Goods should be well crafted and good to look at and made
to last. He, therefore, opposed large industry, which he felt threatened individuality and the
pleasure of work. He was a spokesman ofthe fast dwindling craft manufacturers who conceived
and executed work all by thernselves, unlike in modern industry where conception and execution
of work is separated from each other.
Saint-Simon was, in contrast to Fourier, a man of science, industry and large administration.
He was Rousseauian in spirit in that he believed the colnlnon ma11 of work to be good, honest
and virtuous. He disliked both aristocrats (corrupt) and scholars (arrogant) may be because he
came from an i~npoverishedjunior branch of an aristocratic family. I-le was aII for people's
causes. He fought in the American War of Independence and strongly supported the French
Revolution. Like Owen, he was a great believer in science, technology and Industry. The
nineteenth century, he foresaw as the era of science and industry from which will follow the
unity of mankind and the prosperity of(wo)man. But in contradiction to his distrust of scl~olars
as arrogant, he believed that social reconstruction should follow the advice of what he called
'luminaries' - a learned elite. They must work towards the redesigning of social institufions
with the aim of moral, intellectual and physical improvement of the poorest who also happen
to be the most nutnerous class in society. In all oftliis, the state has to play a central role. The
state nus st find work for all because all are capable of and want to work. What made him a
socialist was his conviction that there is rooni only for one class in society, the workers.
Wages shu~lldbe according to one's capacity to worlc Tor the good of society. The non-workers
are layouts and should be weeded out. Through state control of education and propaganda, the
state should seek to bring about harmony.
Another very iniportant figure alnong the early socialists was Proudhon. I-Ie was the one who
explicitly referred to property as theft and also had a very pole~nicalargument with Marx on
the nature of property and poverty. He wrote a book called Philosophy of Poverty to which
Marx replied with Poverty of Philosophy, pointing to the inadequacies of his philosophical
convictions. One ccntral concern of Proudhon wns the importance of liberty of the ordinary
people. He thought that tlie greatest obstacle in the way of realisation of liberty is inequality.
So we can say that equality was sought by Proudhan as a precondition of liberty and in that
sense, he is i n lune with modern radical ideas. An equalitarian ethos, Proudhan believed, can
only be achieved in a classless society, but he sliunned the idea of classcvar for social change.
Voluntary agreement of the working people should lead the way towards a classless society.
He advocated a natio~iwide system of decentralised workers cooperatives, which can bargain
with one another for mutual exchange of goods and services. At the apex, constituent assemblies
of these cooperatives sliould define the nature of the state, which in effect meant that the
bourgeois oppressive state will cease to be.
It is clear from the exposition of the views of the four leading exponents, there were many
lesser ones too, that 'early socialisni', was not any kind of theory, but a festive play of ideas
against capitalis~iiarid all that it represented. Many ofthese ideas are still around us, in different
garbs and exercise considerable influence. Marx was both critical and appreciative of these'
writings on socialism. He critically referred to them as purely "Utopian" in character. What is
utopian about these, for Marx? There is, first of all, no conception of "revolutionary action."
What are the forces within the, capitalist society who will fight to replace it and how they will
fight? Instead what we have, secondly, is an assortment of vague and diffuse ideas. All Ihe
early socialists were sceptical of class struggle waged by the working class. They all talked
of, as we have seen above, voluntary agreements, change of heart, propaganda and practical
carrying out of social plans, personal inventive actions, small experiments expanding into
society-wide activity, even while all agreed that tile working class is the most suffering class,
but that the entire society be convinced through peaceful means ofthe need to replace capitalism
without distinction of class. Marx thought tliat it would be impossible to bring about socialism
by sucli means. But he appreciated tlie contribution of these writers. He thouglit that by tliese
"instinctive yearning for the reconstr~~ction" of society, thesc early thinkers had succeeded in
creating an atmosphere in favour ofsocialis~n.Moreover. as Marx ren~arkedin the Comrnullist
Manifesto, these ideas became 'valuable niaterials for enliglitenment of the working class'.
So Marx's attitilde was one of criticism without being dismissive as happened with many
later Marxists.
In a general Iiistorical theory of, in what has now conie to be known as historical materialism,
(a) why and how human societies change, and (b) what further changes are in store for human
society, Marx showed that historical cliange is neither accidental nor a result of sheer will;
that it lias laws which are dialectical. Contradiction is the essence of dialectics. This
contradiction is not logical (like inco~npatibilitiesi n an argulnent) but an inner attribute of
reality. Social realily is Inore discernibly marked by this inner contradiction. (In
contradistinction to logical, let 11s call contradiction, in Marxian view, as ontological.) This
fact of contrary pulls or oppositions within a reality impels a ~novementin reality. In other
words, society changes beca~lseof its inner cot~tradictorypulls towards evolving stages. Like
in other earlicr stages (feiidalism Sor exaniple), so in capitalism, it is its internal contradictions
which propel it towards change into sometliing else. I-low? (What are dialectics and their laws
and the exact working of this, etc. cve have discussed in another unit on Marxism.)
Every mode of production (sun? total of forces and relations of production) gives rise to two
classes, in perpetual oppositiol-rto each other. One is the ruling or the exploiting class and tlie
other is tlie oppressed or tlie exploited class. The constant conflict and opposition between
these two classes to get the better of the other is class struggle. Marx remarks in tlie very
beginning of Cornmi~nistManifesto that '"Kc history of all hitherto existing society is the
liistory of class stri~ggl~..'
He then goes on to remark:
Our epoch, ttic epoch of the bourgeoisie, possesses, Iiowever, this distinctive
feature: it has simplified the class antagonisms. Society as a whole is more and
niore splitting LIP into two great Iiostile camps, into two great classes directly
facing each other: Bourgeoisie and proletariat. (Manifesto)
It was in t e r m of this that Marx had concluded after a very detailed study of 1.he capitalist
mode of production (in Capital, Vol.1) that contradictions within it w o ~ ~go l d on intensifying
leading to increasingly intense struggle between the capilalists and the working class. This
would give rise to a revolutionary consciousness alnong the workers and teach thenz that only
a take over of power frorn the ~niiiorityof capitalists could create conditions to fice the working
class from exploitation and lead to tile eniancipation of society.
All this sounds neat, and 01.1the face of it, is persuasive too. But il begs thc question. What
needs an answer is; why sllould the contradiction intensitj so lnucfl that the proletariat will
feel co~npelledto overtllro\v the bourgeois rule and institi~tcits own in place ofthat? There is
an elaborate answer for this in Marx, which is what makes Marx claim that his system is
scientific. (But it is not casy to su~~imarise,
still an outline i s rcq~~it'cd
ta co~nplctethe answer.)
This then takes 11sto the second pole oSlVlasxinn analyses. which looks itt the future of class
struggle froin the view point of tlie process ol' accu~~~ulation of capital and the rate of
exploitation. These two are illternally related to each other. l'here is first the appropriation of
surplus value (S.V.) from the labourer. The laboi~rerwho is given a wage is paid at the cost of
reproducing his labour power, that is, what it costs to buy thc subsistetlce goods Torliving. In
other words, the labour power ofthe worker is bought in the s a n ~ way
e as any other comnlodity,
say iron or cloth or wliatever else is needed to produce further goods, i.e. at the cost of its
production. So labour power is like a comniodity among other commodities. It has been.
establisl~edthat he reprodi~cesthat much of vali~ein 4/5 hours of work, whereas a worker
normally works for 8/10 hours. The extra l ~ o i ~of
r swork that he puts in is tile basis ofadditional
value that he produces which is appropriated by the capitalist. This Marx calls exploitation, a '
built-in structi~raland relational feature of capitalist production, which has notlii~~g to do with
cheating or theft. It is legal and necessary For capitalism.
Such a process goes 011along with i~nprovementsin the technical means ol'production. Over
a long period of time, the cost of inachinery and other fixed capital - known as Constant
Capital (C.C.) becomes Inore and more expensivc in relation to the cost o.F hiring labour
power- referred to as Variable Capital (V.C.). In other words, in the overall (composition) of
capital, there is an increase in the relative importance of C.C. vis-h-vis V.C. This goes on as
tile capitalist'mode of production progresses. This Marx shows leacfs to the centralisation of
capital; that is, the ownership oi'capital gets into fewer and i'ewer I~ands;the. big fish eating
the srnall ones, as we popularly hear. This Marx furtlner shows leads to a fall in the rate of
profit. To compensate for this. the capitalisttries to intensify exploitation, which means he
tries to increase tlie rate of exploitation atid this is resisted by the workers. This results in the
impoverishment ofthe working class in relative as well as absolute terms vis-8-vis the capital ist.
l'his Marx demonstrates will 11ecessarilylead to greater and greater class stnlggles leading
eventually to the overthrow of capitalis~nand the capture of power by the workers. 'That is
why Marx c o ~ ~ sayl d in the A/lnnifisto that "What the bourgeoisie tllerelbre produces, above
all, are its own grave-diggers." The first stage ofthe working class r ~ d eis the establislllnerit of
the dictatorship of the proletariat wliich prepares the way for the establishment of socialism
which then paves the way for communism - the stage where everyone worlcs according to
capacity and takes according to need; the world of choice.
When the workers' revolutioti did not take place, as Marx had foreseen that it soon will, there
emerged strong reservations about Marxist11 as a body of doctrines. One who expressed this in
systeniatic terlns was a long time German Marxist Eduard Bernstein. In a book entitled
Evolutionary Socialism, lie elaborated a wholly different route to and tactics for achieving a
socialist society. The other line of development took shape not because revolution did not
collie about, but because a large group of British Socialists had intrinsic reservations about
Marxism. Tliey tliought that some of its goals and methods and tactics will result in authoritarian,
despotic politics. Tliey toolc exceptiolis to goals like tlie dictatorship of the proletariat, class
warfare, violent overtlirow o f capitalisrii etc. To fi~rthcran alternative way-of achieving
socialism together with strengthening democracy, leading socialists formed themselves into a
Fabian Society in the middle of the 1880's and this version eventually came to be known as
Fabian Socialism. Important naliies wiihin this tradition are Sydney and Beatrice Webb, G.D.1-1.
Cole, Bernard Sliaw, Laski, l'awney, and many others. (Remember that sollie leading Indian
nationalist leaders Icd by Nehru during the Freedom Struggle were deeply influenced by this
current and which after independence gave birth to in the middle of 1950's to the idea of
"Socialist Pattern of Society.")
Bernstein argued that tlie wages of workers are not falling but are, relatively rising because
tlie rate ofprofit is not, as Marx argued, decliningand therefore, the expected impoverislinients
of tlie workers and the consequent uprising will not come about. Rather, the workers would
get more and inore integrated into tlie capitalist system. Hence, the need is to work witllin the
capitalist system by accepting its institutional franieworkofparliament, elections, open political
activity and thereby, striving to improve the condition of tlie working class. The class of
workers has already becolne the majority and by proper organisation, it is now possible to win
a majority in parliament and strive towards socialist ideals. In short, they declared that there
is no need for revolution. (This viewpoint came to be termed, in organised Marxism, as
'revisionism' and 'reformism', a pejorative way of referring to those who abdicated their
responsibility of working for the revol~ltion.)
'Thirdly, tlie route to socialisn~will not be through a violent rupture, as Marx tholight, but
would be by a gradual ascent. In this, by degrees, through closely interconnected legislative
measures, the structure of socialist econolny can be put in place. Equal opportunity of effective
participation in the running of the state, cooperation rather than colnpetition, equality to fully
develop human personality and similar other vali~eswill become norms o f society. And, lastly,
the state will remain an institution ofstrategic importance. Through a series of nationalisation
measures, the state will ensure that the private ownership of the means of production will be
socialised; that is, different forlns of state and cooperative ownerships in industry and public
services like health care, education, electricity, railways, etc., will be instituted. Every body
will thus have equal access and entitlement to goods and services. That is how the planned
economy of public ownership of the means of production together with tlie deepening of
delnocracy and freed0111of intellect will be the way for the emancipation of humanity.
20.6 EXERCISES
I ) Explain wliat is socialism.
2) Write an essay on the doctrine of social progress in the context of individualism and
capitalism.
Conservatisn~,as, a mood, prefers liberty over equality; tradition over changes; history over
politics; past over present or atleast the future; prudent over inquisitive man; and ordered
society over society demanding changes.
21.2 MEANING 'OF CONSIERVABISM
The term 'conservative' has a variety of meanings. It may refer to a person with a moderate or
cautious behavior, or a life style that is conventional, even conformist, or a fear oi', or refusal
to change. Conservatism is an ideology which opposes more than it favours. Andrew Haywood
('Political Ideologies') rightly says that: "There is, for example, some truth in the belief that
conservatives have a clearer understanding of wliat they oppose than what they favour". To
that extept, coliservatistn is a negative philosophy which preaches resistance to 01' atleast
wary suspicion of change: it is, therefore, adefence ofthe status quo. In this sense, conservatism
is a political attitude rather than an ideology. People may be considered to be 'conservative'
when they resist change, without subscribii~gto a conservative political creed. The Stalinists,
in the f o n ~ ~Soviet
er Union, who opposed Gorbachev's 'Perestroika' and 'Glasnost' were
'conservative' in their action, but certainly not conservative in tenns of their political ideology.
The desire to resist change tnay be a recurrent theme within conservatism, but what distinguishes
a conservative from people of other ideologies is the distinctive arguments and values which
a conservative ernploys in upholding his objectives.
Conservatism is more than an 'attitude of mind' or an 'approacl~to 1ife' or what Hugh Ceril
said 'a natural disposition of the human mind'. Conservatives, in fact, prefer to base their
arguments on experience and reality rather than abstract principles. Conservatism is neither
simple pragmatism, nor nicre opportunism. It is based upon a particular set of political beliefs
about human beings, the societies they live in, and the iinportance of a distinctive set of
political values. As such, 'like liberalism and socialism, it can rightfiilly be described as an
ideology' (Andrew Haywood).
The essence of conservatism, Russell Kirk (Thc Con,servative/Mind)says, "is the preservation
of the ancient moral traditions oyhutnanity and that for the canservative, custom, convention,
constitution, and prescription are tlie roots of a tolerable civil order". I-le aclds that "forccs of
great power in nations are prescriptions in favour of local rights and private property, of
habits of life, prejudices in favour ofold decencies, the family, and religious doginas".
Conservatis~n,as Clinton Rossiter says, "is a word whose usefulness is matched only by its
capacity to confi~se,distort and irritate." He adds: "Since the patterns of thought and action it
denotes are real and enduring, and since no substitute seems likely to be generally accepted,
conservatism will doubtless have a long life ..."Since World War 11, the word 'conservatism'
is being used in n u ~ i i e r o ~ways..
~s
Situational conservatis~iiis not confined only to the well-to-do; it extends to all levels of
people who lament change in the status quo.
This should not mean that a restorationist is a conservativc always, though there seems a
relationsliip between a restorationist in the sense ofconservative and a revalution. In the sense
of a rcstorationist, a conservative is delusionist and like a revolutionist, he may have outbursts.
But it is going too far. A conserv'ative,which a revolutionary is not, is a lnan of order in whose
scheme of things, a shattesed society has no place.
The role of history and tradition is basic to any type of conservatism. History, reduced to its
essentials, is nothing but experience. It is deductive tl~oughtin matters of liurnan relationship,
Legitinlacy is the work of history. "To see things authentically as a conservative", Mani~licim
writes, "is to experience events ill the pas+?. True I~istoryis expressed not in linear and
chro~iologicalfashion:, but in the persistence ofstructures, commwnities, habits and prejudices
generation after genekation. The correctness of history or of experience for that matter is a
persisting conservatiqe ernpliasis. 'This has been shown by Burke, Rourke, Oakeshott and
Voegelin, to mention la few. Social reality can be understood through a historical approach:
"We cannot know where we are, mud1 less where we are going, until we know where we have
been. That is the bedrock position of the co~iservativephilosophy of history". ('Conservatism:
Dream and Reality')
T l ~ ecorlservative view of society is one that is a living thing, an organism whose parts are
r~eitherequal nor the same, work together and lnalce the human body filnction properly; each
part of the org-anic society (i.e., fa~nily,government, a factory) plays a particular role in
sustaini~~g and maintaining the health of society. Heywood explains, "If society is organic, its
structure and institutions have been shaped by natural forces and its fabric should therefore be
preserved and respected by the individirals who live within it."
No conservative believes in equality, in social equalily at that. They thinlc that people are born
ilneqilally ii-i the sense that: talents a~idslcitls are distributed unequally: unequap shoslld not be
treated equally. The conservatives believe that ir~eclualityis Inore deep-rooted. Geni~incsocial
equality, for the co~~servatives, is therefore, a myth.
~ o n s e r v a t i s ~adores
n power in so far as it helps establish order in society. It adljnires authority
because it is autllority through whicll order is established in society. Collservatives favour at1
autl~oritarianand all-powerfill state. Public ordel- and the ~noralfabric of society can be
maintained t h r o ~ ~ gthe h power and authority of the state. I-leywood writes: "Furthermore,
within conservatism there is a strong paternalistic tradition which portrays government as a
father-figure within society."
21.4.5 Property and Life
Property, for conservatives, possesses a deep and mystical significance. The conservatives
11old the view that property has a range of psycl~ologicaland social advantages: it provides
security; gives people a sense of confidence; promotes social values. As such, the conservatives
want that property must be safeguarded from disorder and lawlessness. They say that the
property owners have a stalce in society. They have an interest in maintaining law and order.
Property ownership promotes tlie conservative values of respecting the law, authority and
social order. "A deeper and more personal reason", I-Ieywood writes, "Why Conservatives
may support property is that it can be thought of almost an extension of an individual's
personality. People 'realise' tl-~ernselves,even see tlie~nselves,in what they own".
"It is the contempt", Burlce wrote, "for property ...that has led to all the other evils which have
received France (the French Revolution, 1789) and broiiglit al I Europe into the most imminent
danger".
Conservatism advocates the sanctity of property. In the heart of every true conservative there
is, as Ri~ssellKirk WI-ites,"persuasion that property and freedom are inseparably connected
and that econo~niclevelling is not economic progress. Separate property from private possession
and liberty is erased". Irving Babbitt added: "Every form of social justice.... tends toward
confiscation, and confiscation, when practised on large scale, ilnderrnines moral standards,
and in so far, substitiltes for real justice the law of cunning and the law of force."
21.4.6 Religion and Morality
Conservatism is, indeed, unique alnong major ideologies in its emphasis on religion and
tnorality. Irrespective of deliomination, all the conservatives including Hegel, Haller and
Coleridge made religiori, and therefore morality, a keynote of state and society.
The conservative silpporl for religion and nloral ity rests on the well-founded belief that human
beings, once they get aclrift from major orthodoxy, are likely to suffer some measure o f
derangement, of loss ofeqililibrii~ln."Religion", Burke wrote to his son, "is man's fastness in
an otherwise inco~npretze~~sible and thereby llostile world". Tocquevi lle, before his death bed
confessio~i,described the value of religion and morality to government and society, and t o
freedorn: "When there is no longer ally principle of authority in religion anyrnore than in
politics, men are speedily frightened at the prospect of unbounded independence. ... for my
part, I doubt whether man can ever support at the same time co~npletereligious independence
and entire political freedom. And I am inclined to think that if faith be wanting in hirn, he
l~iustbe subject; and ifhe be fiee, he I I I L I Sbelieve".
~
Religion is a spiritual phenomenon. But at the same time, it is an essential social cement as
well. For the conservatives, these exists a close relationship between religion and conservatisni,
foc religion provides society a moral fabric.
Burke's conservatism is the basis of all liis writings. Conservatism, as a theory, ~tsually
has three varieties: (u) Stutzrs Quo: It is one in which things are kept as they are. I n every
society, one finds people who are interested to keep things as they stand and who wotlld
not like to bring changes, for in a status q~~o,.tliey have nothing to losc; (b) Orgcmiznfionol
Conserv~lisrn:SLICIIinterests of nien as tavour status quo wo~lldfind ways and 111eatis to
protect them, protliote t1.ten-tand [email protected], cotlies organization which serves
those who want to keep the status quo. what is organizational is conservative in nature.
Yesterday's icliil becomes today's tnovetuent and today's movement becolnes tomorrow's
organization; (c) ZI'hilo.sophicrr1 Cot7.se1.vati,si?1:Once there is interest in the stat~tsquo and
an organization to protect it, there is built an ideology, a pliilosophy around the interest to
be protected. Conservatism, as a. pliilosophy, is the building ol'a case for tlie protection
and pro~i~otion of such interests.
Burke, in his writings, has passed tlirougli the above varieties of conservatis~i~, Having
stood t'or the admiration of the status quo, Ile builds the organization (parliametltary system,
tlie political parties ~vith,nat.ionalinterests, etc., etc.) to sitpport the status quo. But within
thc frame-work 0.f conservatism, Burlte demonstrates rel'ortnism. Until B~lrlte'sarrival,
tlie Whig party was on tlie ofknsive. With Burke, there developed tlie beginning of a
shift wliicli carried tlie prevailing social philosophy fro111att~1cIcto defence.
ii) Oakesliott3 plea for traditionalism, as an aspect ofliis conservatism in politics, moruls
and life, in general, proceeds logically fiom liis critiq~teol. rationalism. ~ c c o r d i n gto
Oakesliott, the ideological style of politics (i.e., the rationalist style) is ~1 confitsed style,
for ideology in thc rationnlist sclietnc, as he thinks, is merely an abridgement, an index.
So, Oalcesliott's answer is that tlie only style, one slio~~ld
adopt and pitrsue, is the traditional
one. Political activity, 0ak.eshott affirms, cannot spring but .froin the existing traditions
of beliavio~~r and the forni that it takes is the amendmelit of' existing arrangements by
explorilig and pursuing what is implied in them. All activity, for him, therefore, is traditional
in nature. Every idea, every ideal, every ideology, eveti the niost revolntionary, as described
by Oakeshott, is traditional, always an index, an abridge~iientof tladitional manner of
attending to the arrangements of society.
Political activity, for Oakeshott, is, as Minogue says, "not succumbing to an impulse, nor
is it drawing an implication: it is tlie p ~ t r s ~of t il~tilnatioll.. . intimatiotis appear as a
~ iill?
Itincl of via ti~ediabetween the extremes ol'logical implication and inexplicable accident."
Oakesliott's solution, Minogue holds, "is to take politics as a traditional activity, the
point ofthe word 'traclitional' beingto emphasize that it can only be ~~nderstoocl in historical
terms."
Tradition, Oakeshott feels, is not a fixed manner of dong thing, but is flow of sympathy.
Every political activity, therefore, is a conseqilential activity for him, the pursuit of intimation
as he fondly calls it..TIiis means that political activity is what political activity actually is and
not what it can be or i t ought to be. It is what it succeeds actually in doing. All those who
indulge; Oakeshott says, in revolutionary or idealistic actions indulge only in self-deception.
Oakeshott writes: "111 political activity, then, men sail a boundless and bottomless sea: there is
neither harbour for shelter nor floor for anchorage, neither starting-place nor appointed
destination. The enterprise is to keep afloat 011 an even keel; the sea is both friend and enemy:
and tlie seamanship consists in using the resources of a traditional manner of behaviour in
order to make a Friend of every liostile occasion."
Oakeshott regprlls the traditional style of politics as the only legitimate style. In this essay on
"Being Consevative", he emphasizes that being conservative is to prefer the familiar to the
unknown, the tried to tlie untried, fact to mystery, the actual to the possible, near to the distant,
the convenient to the prefect, present laughter to tlie utopian bliss. To be conservative is to be
equal to one's own fortune, to live at the level of one's means. Stability, Oakeshott says, is
any day more profitable than improvement. Oakeshott is suspicious of both change and
innovation and, therefore, would like people to lpok twice at the claims promised by a change.
If tlie change is i~navoidable,Oakeshott would then favour only small and slow changes. Only
that refor~n,he insists, be accepted that remedies a defect or that helps disequilibriuln to be
redressed.
Like Burke, Oakeshott regards society as a conversation rather than an argument. "Oakeshott
does not believey', Minogue says, "tliat the point of the conversation is to elicit truth, thqugh-at
titnes it will doubtless do so. Indeed, the whole point ofthe conversation is that it doesn't have
a point, and therefore 1iia11ythings may find a place in it which would be expelled as irrelevant
.in a selninar or a debate in a legislative assembly." As Oakeshott himself says, "It is with
conversation as wit11 gambling, its significance lies neither in winning nor in losing, but in
wagering."
Tradition, according to Oakeshott, is described as anything under the sun. It is, he says,
continuity; it is steady; though it moves, it never is wholly in motion; though it is never
holly at rest. To know, Oakeshott says, only tlie gist of traditionalism is to know nothing;
icnowledge of it is unavoidably knowledge of its detail. Oakeshott's definition is too broad to
niean anything or mean nothing.
21.6 SUMMARY
Conservatism is an ideology of conservation. It developed essentially as a reaction against the
growing pace of political and economic changes especially in the West. This is one reason
that any use of the word 'conservatism' resists change. As a philosophy, it defends the values
ofhierarchy, tradition and order against pressures generated by indr~strialisationand represented
by the political challenges of liberalis~nand socialism. That is why there is a basic distinction
among t l ~ cleftists and socialists, libertarians and conservatives. The leftists and the socialists
are the party of bureaucracy (i.e., hardcore communists); libestarians, of markets; and
conservatives, of tradition.
Conservative ideology has its peculiar feati!res: tradition and history, human imperfections
with a love for prejudice and against reason, organic society with liberty and inequality,
admiration of authority and power, strong plea for property and life rights, and belief in ethical,
moral and religions values.
The future of col~servatisl~i is inarred by its own limitations. Its opposition to equality and
Inore than this, its defense of inequality make it unpopular in societies which have a strong
democratic tendency. Conseqilently, conservatism has not succeeded in developing into an
ideology of worldwide importance. In itself, conservatism is too broad and has become, to
that extent, too vague an ideology: what is radical today lnay not be so tomorrow.
21.7 EXERCISES
1) Explain the meaning of conservatis~n.In how lnany major senses the word 'conservatism'
is used?
22.1 INTRODUCTION
Religion has bee11traditionally one of the major coliiponents of national identity, and at times,
its most prominent feature. Almost every state comprises of groups having faith in one religion
or tlie othes: Northern. Irelarid Iias Protestants and Catholics, Sri Lanka, Christian Tamils and
Buddhist Sinhalese, India, Hindus, Muslims, Sil<lis,Christians and many others, and even in
a par1;icular religion, there may be one sect or the other: tlie Sunnis atid the Sliias among-the
Muslims; tlze Arya San~qjis,the Sanatan Dliarmees and tlie Parnamis among the Hindus, for
example.
TO be a nian of rcligion and to be a funda~nentalistare not the same thing, fbr religion is not
F~~~ida~iientalisln.Faith in religion does not a m o ~ ~ton t faith in religious firt~damentalism.
Religion implies a moral order, a sublinie faith and a spiritilal end. Fundalnentalism and
especially, its religious aspect is the perversion of religion; it is the exploitation of religion,
sometimes open and sometinies subtle; it is a tactical means to tkc wicked immoral end,
converting religiosity into politicallfanatical bellicosity.
?'lie relationsl~ipbetwecn knowledge and belief is, indeed, subtle, though the distinction between
tlie two is very obvious. It is science that separates the two, Knowledge is all science or
sciel~celeads to kliowledge. Belief is only faith, and faith is always unscientific. But when
--.
knowledge ends u p i n belief, ideology and religion transfortn the~nselvesinto fi~ndamel-ttalisn~:
ideological fundamentalism is as unscie~itificand bereft of knowledge as rcligioits
F~~ndamentalisni. Wlicn a religious precept says, truth sllall win, it is knowledge, hilt when a
nian fro111 a religioli says that what he is saying is the truth, it is belicf and tl~erefore,has in it,
all the essentials ol'f~incSnmentalism.Likewise, Hitler, Mussolini or Stalin claim that their
assertion alotic is the gospel truth and wliei~they want all others to believe so, it is secular or
non-religious fundamentalism. Faith, in any f o m ofifundamentalism,is never questioned and
it stays beyond the reach of any reason and enquirk A fundamentalist of the religious type
would never permit faith to be destroyed, of what.he thinks to be a faith. No ideology and no
leader of any ideology would ever allow to get its tenets challenged. Ganguly (Faces of
Fundamentalism) points and rightly: "The result is that we decide about an invariant faith,
whenever discrepancies arise, we have to reinterpret, modifj, ignore or destroy the sources of
discrepancies." As fundamentals become an article of faith, changes in the ideological belief
become impossible and, it, then changes to fundamentalism.
Neither any religious nor any non-religious fundamentalist can afford any dissent, either of
voice or word. Silencing ofvoice and pen is a significant pursuit of all forms of fundamentalism.
With the development of ideological or religious thinking and the evolution of fundamentalism,
a condition is created that is aptly described by Aldous Huxley: "At no period of world's
history has organized lying been practiced so shamelessly.. ..".The fundamentalist's demand
is the surrender of individual consciousness to what he thinks is the basic principkof religion
or ideology. With a fundamentalist,"God, Hitler, or Marx" are never wrong.
Fundamentalism need not be confused with'revivalism. With the passage of time, there do
arise rigidity and complexities in the evolution of any religion. When attempts are made to
r
modify rigid rules or in the course of such movements, new sects appear, they do ot constitute
fundamentalistic activities. The rise of Buddhism and Jainism as a reaction to Hinduism,
reformation movement as a reaction to the Roman Catholic Church or movements launched
by the Muslim reformers can not be labelled as fundamentalistic movements. These and other
religious revivalisms are attempts to reform religions, reinterpret the brecepts or launch a new
religion. Likewise, when Lenin was trying to reinterpret Marxism or Mao seekirig to introduce
Marxism - Leninism in China, they were making efforts not to deviate from the Marxian
tenets, though such an assertion cannot be made about Bernstein. Hitler and Mussolini, on the
other hand, were merely restating totalitarian fundamentalism.
- - - -
One of the basic characteristics of fundamentalism is that it goes back to the original and to
the definite sources and interprets them in its own words, asserting in the correctness of what
the interpreter is saying. A fundamentalist's position, in this regard, is that what he is saying
is the correct interpretation of the original or that the source meant what his interpretation is;
a fundamentalist wouId not accept the opposite interpretation nor would he like to change
what he thinks to be correct. In his attitude, a fundamentalist is uncompromising in his nature,
he is aggressive; in his conviction, he is a fanatic. Ideology too has these features: a Hitlerite
is a Hitlerite whatever be the circumstance; a liberal is a liberal whatever be at stake; a
communist is a cohmunist whatever be the temptations.
Doctrinal conforn~ityis another cl~aracteristicfeature of all funda~iientalism.The
fundatnentalist's conviction in the doctrine is ilnassailable, its principles are inviolable,
indefeasible, literal and absolutely binding. I-le is absolutely certain that the essential care of
his belief is capable ofsolving all problems; his faith is inerrant, exclusive to all other ideologies
and thus self-sufficient and incornrnensurate witli other philosophies or ideologies. Ganguly
writes: "We can clearly comprehend why 'revisianism' is a deadly crime in communism and
why apostasy is punishable by death in fitndamentalist Islam."
Fundamentalism does not know the language of conversation, but only that of imposition.
Believing in do'ctrinal correctness, a fundatnentalist wants the rest of the society to conform
to the doctrine. The fi~ndamentalists,instead of participating in dialogue, control deliberations
and do not hesitate to intervene, ofienly forcibly, to ensure that society is compelled to confor~n
to the behaviours their worldview requires. Scott Bidstrup (Why the 'Fundan~entalist'Approach
to Religion must be Wrong?) says: "The belief that they (the fundamentalists) arc right, without
any question, justifies, in their own minds, taking upon tlie~nselvesthe right to impose their
point of view, by force if necessary."
Fundamentalis~nlias its own doctrine, if not the creed; it seeks to institute a harsh set of roles
as political law: the Shcrricr, as in Klio~neit~i's
Iran, beco~nesthe law of the land; so was the
case in Taliban's Afghanistan; and so was Hitler's word, (or Mussolini's word in Italy) a law
in Nazi Germany, and that of Stalin in the former USSR. As one Mormon leader, in the case
of religious funda~nentalistn,once said (and this is true about any non-religious hndamentaiism
as well), while addressing an audience of university students: "Do not think for yourself. The
thinking has already been done." A fi~ndamentalistis never an audience, he is always a speaker.
Fundan~entalismis always \vithout a base. It starts witli a conclusion and, thereafter, searches
for evidence of support for the conclusion and if the fi~ndamentalistdoes not find any, he
creates one. It is an evidence-less exercise. This sort of methodology is not exclusive to
Christianity. but can be seen in otherlreligionstoo: tlie Christian fundamentalists are as non-
scientific as other fundamentalists: Islamic, Hindu and the like. Fundamentalism promotes
ignorance. It does not permit 'why'. The followers of Marx whose life motto was 'challenge
cv3rything' do not give this concession to others, not cven to the Marxists themselves. Bidstrup
writes: ".... Fundamentalism all too oftcrl justifies in its adherents' minds the prejudices, the
zealotry, the intolerance and the hate mongering that are all the most base of human instincts".
"Fundamentalism of any stripe", he continues, "is not progress: but rather I contend, .is the
impedance of progress,"
It is not necessary t.l~atone has to believe in God to be called religious. Many religions do not
belicve in a creator-deity. Buddhism, in its original form, did not postulate a creator-deity.
Buddhist Japan has 110 word for 'God'. Confucius preached, if Confucianis~nis regarded a
religioli, it is basically a systern of ~noralcode of conduct. So is true about Taoism as well.
Mussolini and Hitler were no regular visitors ofany church. No Marxist believes in God or for
that matter, in religion.
Many scholal-ssee in co[nmunisni (Marxis~n)almost all the features ofa religion. Tlie I~istorian
Toynbee says that a lasting contribution of Marx has been the historical re-affirmation of
Christian moral conscience of Marxisni: "Saint Augustine emphasised this through Christian
theology. Marx did it through socialis~.~i." Russell has also shown that Marxistn lias the structure
of a religion: "it has tlic Yahiwcli wliich is the Dialectical Materialism, the Messiah tliat is
Marx, tlie Elect tliat is ilie Proletariat, the Church tliat is the Communist Party." "It lias tlie
absol~itesource, of mystery", he continues, "the dialectical materialism, the revelation in the
fonn of historical laws and its deterministic i~nfoldingand also, it has its eschatology, that is,
the withering away of the state. tlie coming oftlie Colnmunist Man and the ~~ltimate advent of
trans-co~nmunis~ii."
It is difficult to deny ilic scientific approach which Marx adopted; it is difficult to label Marx
a ~ltopian,especially when everyone knows his efforts at theorising socialis~iias scientifically
as possible. It is also dif'ficult to refer to his tlieory as deterniinistic when all tlirough he fougl~t
against determinism. BLIL as hisphilosophy canie down to his foIlowers, they made it doctrinal,
Lenin closing it to fiindanientalis~nand Stalin, after completing the progression, giving it the
shape of a totalitarian doctrine.
A S~lndaliientalist'sn~indis one that does not permit the iclea of unintended consequences to
creep in. If anything happens, the happening lniist have a meaning. For a fundamentalist, the
meaning is fo~lndit1 the intentiolis oftl~epersonwho has caused the act. Narrow as his thinlti~lg
is, ~~arrowlyas he perceives tliings, the fundamentalist never thinks beyond his own thinking.
For those who thi1i1~the other way, it becornes a liioral rnatter for the fundamentalist to defencl
and .fi~rtherinore,impose his worldview over the opponents.
The fi~ndan~entalists are always secretive. They are liabitual in coding and decoding signs and
discovering their Iiiddet~connections. "l'hcre isa long tradition", Brilce tells us, "in Protcsti~nt
filndanientalim in decoding allegorical Bible passages." 'That the funda~nentalistsare close to
terrorists or that t.licy tliemselves are terrorists is a well-known fact in the context ul' Indo-
Pakistan relations. They are ready to provide a11all-purpose legiti~iiization(say, 'Jeliad' in tlic
case of Islari~icli~ridarnentalismas also other terms in otlier religious f~tndamcntalisms)for
almost any act.
Hitiduis~n,as a religion, in the context of lslaln and Protestant Christianity as they arc, is Icss
~nonolitliic and dogmatic and hence, less fiuidamentalistic. There are a n~lrnbero-fseasons I'or
that: there is diff~lsenessi l l Hinduism, different deities, a variety of gods. So diffi~scdis the
society as well: a variety of traditions, gro~rps,sects. It niay be, Bruce says, "better described
riot as a religion, but as a loose collection of religions: that of the Shaivites, the Vnisl~tia~~as,
tlie Slialcras, tlie Smartas, and others - that share salne colnlnon themes but they toleratc a
h~lgevariety of expressions of these the~nes.As tliose expressio~iscan vary fiorii village to
village and caste to caste, there is a little scope for enforcing conformity, criticising laxity, or
vigoroi~slyrejecting nloderate reconstr~~ctions of the tradition. Instead of the single Bible or
s books and holy traditions." Hindu fundamental ism is
Quran, there are a largc ~ i u ~ ~ i bofe rholy
rare and arises only when anti-Hindu fundamental is ti^ challenges it. Witliin itself, revivalistic
attempts have been at worlc in Hinduism: sometimes in the forms of Buddhism, Jainism or
Sikhism at an early period of history or in the forms of Brahmo Samaj, Arya Samaj,
Ramakrishna Mission or Ved-Samaj during the greater part of the nineteenth century.
Orthodoxy has always been met with revivalism in Hinduism. To that extent and arguably,
monolithic religions such as Judaism, Christianity and Islam offer relatively more fertile soil
for fhndamentalisrn than Hinduism.
Protestantism and Islam have much in common. Their potentials are the same: both can generate
fundamentalism; their aims are similar: each wishes to assert the primacy of its religious
belief systems and the patterns of behaviour each belief system requires. But both differ in
their methods. The Islamic fundamentalists believe that coercion is proper; most of them
believe that it is necessary as well, while others feel that it is required, declaring 'jihad'
literally. The Protestant fundamentalists do not believe so. Christ preached against the old
law of 'eye for an eye' and instead recommended to offer another cheek to the person who has
already hit the first check. 'Though radical Protestants have created militant sects, the Protestants
are relatively pacifists.
Protestants and Islamists differ in1their attitudes to toleration. By and large, the Protestants are
tolerant while the Islamists are lGss so; the USA, for example, permits freedom of religious
expression and attempts to prevebt the state promoting one religion as superior to any other.
As against this, most of the Muslim countries are far less tolerant. Referring to this, Bruce
writes: 'Note that this is a matter of description and not value judgement. Nothing about what
I have said requires us to believe that permissiveness is better than authoritarianism."
Differences in the two monolithic religions can be cited in abundance. But that apart, what is
more significant here is that Islamic fundamentalism is more potent, and more severe than
Christian fundamentalism. We can turn to them briefly.
Christianity and politics, for most of the time stayed apart. It became official religion of the
Roman Empire in only AD 373, though it was officially tolerated from sixty years before, i.e.,
3 13 AD. During the Middle Ages, the theory ofthe two the swords kept the two domains, temporal
and ecclesiastical, distinct from each other. The Reformation not only brought to the fore the
two sects, Catholics and Protestants, it made religion a private affair of the individual.
Liberalism, in the West, is not due to Christianity but due to its absence. Lewis says: "The
distinction between the church and the state (is) ...... rooted in Christendom".
This is not to say that Christians are not religious. 'They are as religious minded as the followers
of any other religions: many of them live a life-style which is particularly godly. Bruce says,
".... The core of Protestantism is correct belief, not correct action; orthodoxy rather than
ortho-praxis." With the emergence of the modern state, century after century, Christianity
remained aloof from the state, though most ofthe citizens in the western nations were Christians.
Christian fundamentalists, in relation to the state and the law, operate in a more legitimate
manner and largely .in secular countries.
Islamic fundamentalism is more pronounced, more vocal and more action-oriented. From the
beginning, Islam, unlike Christianity, remained political. The Prophet and the subsequent
Caliphs were both spiritual and political leaders. The founder of the Muslim Brotherhood, an
Islamic fdndamentalist organisation, puts it as: "Politics is part of religion. Caesar and what
belongs to Caesar is for God ~ l m i g halone."
t~ The Islamic fundamentalist promotes a life-
style which is not only conformity to the creed, it demands actions also in conformity with
what the fi~nda~nentalist wants. A hostage, held by Hezbollah, puts the case of Islamic
fundam'entalism, saying: "All our activities, from the way we slept to the way we entered a
lavatory, were watched so that we could not violate the laws of Islam. Khomeini had written
that on entering a lavatory, a believer must put his left foot forward first. We were taken to
task for violating that rule." And Bruce adds: "For Islam, religion is a matter of obeying the
Holy Law. As what God requires is obedience to the Law, then its imposition is not just
acceptable but necessary." Most of the Muslim countries, especially in the Middle East, have
not been able to shed their religion which is Islam, despite all their efforts to westernise
tl~ernselves.Islam, for tliern, is Illore than a religion: it is their eye, it is their way. The lslamic
fundamentalists in relation to the state, operate largely intheocratic countries and seek Musliin
brotherhood and Islamic unity.
22.8 SUMMARY
Religion, as a basic urge of mankind, cannot be altogether ignored. But when it, along with
any fundamentalist ideology, tends to get personalised in leadership and when the latter speaks
for religion while ignoring all reasoning, it becomes fundamentalism. Fundamentalism is not
religion; it is the perversion of religion. A fundamentalist is one who considers his religion
separate from others, claiming its superiority. He is the one who has faith in what he thinks to
be the creed. Instead of a devotee of a religion (or a follower of an ideology), he becomes its
spokesman, its prophet and wants all the rest to confor~n.He is a doctrinaire to the extent of
an impositionist; he is an i~npositionistto the extent of a terrorist.
Fundamentalism, of any type, is extremism. It has, as its strength, all faith, and no reason; all
hatred for others, and no compassion; all doctrinal conformity, and no Iove. In the name of
religion (or say ideology) it does all that which is irreligious. It misinterprets the precepts and
the original creed. It ill-educates the disciples.
The fundamentalist, of any tibe, is rigid, uncomproniising and aggressive: he never listens,
he only speaks; lie never follows, lie only guides; he, himself, becomes the teacher, the
philosopher and the guide; he has more enemies than friends; he is secretive in his activities -
more or less a misguided fellow.
Fundamentalis~nhas its base, its means and its objectives. It base lies in untruth; its means are
confined to violence, and its objectives are to let terror rule tlie world. I t arises from time to
time, but it has never seen victory and would never do so.
22.9 EXERCISES
1) Explain the meaning of fundamentalism. Wlio is a fi~ndamentalist?
2) Do you think fundariientalism is confined only to religious faiths? If so, give arguments.
3) Discuss the relationship between ideology and fundamentalism.Bring out similarities between
the two.
4) How does the mind ofa fundanientalistwork? Explain in detail. ,
23.7 Exercises
ii) When did tlie nation appear? The different tlieories of nationalism try to answer this
question, though we do nor find any final answers.
i i i ) Mow did the nations and nation-states historically evolve and developed and whether
there is any marlted difference between the developmelit of nationalislli in the western
and tlic nun-western world?
iv) Recent challenges to nationalism in the forni of ethnic resurgence and globalization,
In short, nationalisni has two aspects: i) tlie political character of nationalisln as an ideology
defeiicling t l ~ cnrition that tlie*stateand the nation slio~~ld
be congruent, and ii) its capacity to
be a provider oi'4dentity For individuals co~~scious of forming a g l a i ~ pbased upon :1 conilnon
past and culture and attaclitiient to a concrete territory. 'l'lie power of nationnlis~nemanates
i'ro~iiits abi lily 1.0 engender sentiments of belo~iging10 a particular community. Symbols and
rituals play a major role ill the ct~ltivationo f a sense of solidarity ariiong tlie people.
'Thus, in order to understand tlie concept of nationalisrri, we must keep in liiind that:
an important feature of nationalisln is its capacity to bring together people from different
social and cultural levels. Nationalism is not merely an invention of the ruling classes t o
maintain the unconditional loyalty of the masses, but also a tool to make them believe
that they have much in common. This is one of the basic factors for understanding the
persistence of nationalism.
Tlie development of vernacular 1anguages after the invention of the printing-press in Europe
played a decisive role in creating a sense of belonging to a co~nlnunity.National conscioirsness
is derived from shared values, traditions and melnories within a particular culture and which
are thought of and spoken in a particular language. Though the vernacular is not an indispensable
basis for the creation of national consciousness, yet it does facilitate that creation. Where
nation and state were co-extensive, education and the generalization of literacy not only
reinforced the possibility of commu~.ricationamong the people, but also helped in the
development of a strong sense of com~nu~~ity. The developlnent of English, French and German
languages and education based upon the school system led to the creation o f a strong national
consciousness. When tlie state manages to impose a culturc and language, it is 'nationalism
which engenders naiions'. If tlie state is successful, it manages to develop, apart from the
political, a corn bination of several relationships such as economic, territorial, religious,
linguistic and cultural. It is this state which creates a nation.
Secondly, the key question will1 regard to ntitional identity is - who am I? Identity is an
interpretation of the self that establislies what and where a person is, both socially and
psychologically. Identity exists in societies which define and organize them. In the current
era, the nation represents one of these communities. National identity is its product. The
defining criteria of identity are: continuity over time and differentiation. While continuity lies
in historical roots, differentiation stems from the conscioilsness of forming a community with
a shared culture, attached to a concrete territory wl~ichdistinguishes between members and
'strangers'. This iden~ityfillfils three fi~nctions:i) it helps in making choices such as the right
I
110
I
A
to decide abo~lttheir col~~mon political identity, ii) it makes the relationship possible with
others beca~lsenation is a cotnlnon pool in which individuals with a common culture live and
work together, and iii) national identity gives strength and resilience to individuals to identify
with an entity which transcends them. Now this identity is created through the development
of a cornmon culture i.e. values, beliefs, customs, conventions, habits and practices that are
transmitted to the new members wlio receive the culture of a particular conimunity. The
process of identification with the elements of a specific culture implies a strong emotional
investment. From the point of view of nationalism, a common culture favours the creation of
a bond of solidarity anlong the members of a given community and allows them to image the
colnlnunity they belong to as separate and distinct from others.
Thirdly, in the creation of national identity, a powerfill role is also played by symbols and
rituals. The conscioilsness of forming a comlnilnity is created through the use of symbols and
repetition of rituals that give strength to the individual members ofthe community. By favouring
occasions in which they feel ~111itedand by displaying symbols that represent this unity, a
nation establishes its distinction fro111others. For example, a soldier does so for his flag because
he identifies the flag with his country. Also, syti~bolslike the flag have the power to evoke
particular men~oriesor feelings. This helps in the ability of nationalism to bind together people
fiom different cultural levels and social background. Sy~iibolsmask differences and highlight
comn~onaliiy,creating a sense of group. And last but not the least, individuals who share the
same culture, feel attached to a concrete land, have the experience of a ~ommrhn-~ast and a
project for the future, need to create occasions in which all that unites them is emphasized. In
these moments, the individual forgets about himself atid the sentiment of belonging to a group
occupies the prime position. Througli rituals, individuals are able to feel an emotion of unusual
intensity that springs from their identification with the entity - the nation - which is above
them and of which they are a part.
Thus, the force of nationalism springs not only fi'oni rational thought alone, but also from
irrational power of emotions that stems from the feeling of belonging to a particular group.
This do~lbleface of nationalism results from the way in which these emotions are either
transformed into a peaceful and democratic m o v e ~ ~ ~seeking
e n t the recognition and development
of one's nation or turned into xenophobia; i.e., tile will to pill one's nation above others and
eradicate the differences.
organic (natural based on languages) seamless (i.e. they see society as a whole), and as a
popular coln~n~lnity that reflects the needs and ideals of the people. Ancestral ties and culture
are of great importance to the advocates of this theory. On the other hand, modernists see the
-
nation as a political con~munity modern, social construct and social creation, designed for an
age of revolution and niass ~iiobilization.The nation is seen as a creation of the elite in order
to control and influence the tlio~ightand actions of the masses. They see the nation as divided,
different social groups representing religion, gender and class, having different needs and
therefore, split into separate groupings. Let 11shave a look at tliese theories in detail:
A) Perennial Theories
Sociobiological
(B) Modernization Theories
e Social Comtn~~nication
Theories
Ecoliomistic Tlieories - Marxist and Non-Marxist
e Political-Ideological Theories
23.3.1 Perennial Theories
23.3.1 .I Primordlalist and Socio-Biological Theories
Alllong tlie perennial theories, we can refer to the pri~nordialand the socio-biological
perspectives. PI-imordialism assumes that group identity is given; that there exist in all societies
certain primordial, irrational attachments based on blood, race, language, religion, region etc.
Tliey are, as Clifford Geertz writes, "inel%able atid yet coercive ties, which are the result of a
long process of crystallization". Modern states partici~larlybut not exclusively, in the third
world, are superitnposed on the prin~osdialrealities which are the ethnic groups or communities.
Prin~ordialistsbelieve tliat ethnic identity is deeply rooted in the historical experience OF I
hi~manbeings to the point of being practically given. Tliey believe that ethnic bonds are
'natural', fixed by tlie basic experiences tliat human beings undergo within tlieir family ties'
and other primary groups. In short, according t o Geertz, i) primordial identities are given or
natural, ii) pri~nordialidentities are ineffable, that is, cannot be explained or analysed by
referring to social interaction but are coercive, and iii) primordial identities deal essentially
wit11 the sentiments or affections.
The social biologists go a step Li~rther.'Tliis approach starts with the assumption that nationalisrn
is the result of the extension of kin selection to a wider sphere of individuals who are defined
it1 terlns of putative or common descent. It insists that nationalism combines both rational and
irrational elements; that is, a 'primitive mind' with modern tecliniclues. The word nationalism
expresses different realities: a love of country, the assertion of national identity and national
dignity as well as the xenopl~obicobsession to obtain tliese things throilgh violence and
sacrifices, Nationalisn~bui Ids on etlino-cc~~t~.ism towards the in-groups and xenophobia towards
the out-groups. According to Shaw and Tuba, nationalis111 rosters pride, dignity and related
sentiments arnong merlibers of the in-group, thereby constituting a moral and pliilosophical
basis on which to demand the political. It lias its roots in the past, but it is a contemporary
vehicle to vent out human propensities to war. It is important in this context to emphasize the
psycliological dimensions of nationalism. A bond is established between the individual and
the nation based on the idea that the latter is a family writ large, tlie individual identifies with
the nation and hcnce, prefers it to other nations. 'The extensive use of kin terms to refer to tile
nation reflects this psycho-affective reality that is called 'rnatr$~atriotic7 with an associated
fraternal component.
23.3.2 Modernization Theories
-
Modernizatioli theories of nationalism broadly assert that nationalis~nis a modern phenomenon
and is the result of the process of transition from traditional to modern society. Some of these
theories focus Inore specit?cally on the spread of industrialization and the socio-economic,
political and cultural conditions fi~nctionallyassociated with it as the nlain cause for the
development of nationalism. The ideological roots of n~odernizationare found in Renaissance,
Scientific Revolution and the Enlightenment. At the econolnic level, modernization was brought
about by the development of comlnerce and then, the process of industrialization. At the
political level, it implied the appearance ofthe modern nation-state - a centralized, bureaucratic,
territorial sovereign polity. When applied to lion-western societies, some features of modernity
such a s commercialization, bureaucratization, secularization, urbanization, Inass
con~n~unication, literacy may be present while industrialization is often absent.
Modernization theories ofnationalism come under different l'orms. Let 11sstudy them in detail.
Another writer wlio has established a link bctwcen modernization and nationalisln is tlie
American political scientist Dankwart Rustow. In his book.4 Worl~lc!f'N~~iion.s, he writes that
'the essential linlc between niodernization and nationalism consists of course in~tlienced for
an intensive division oi' labour'. Other key features sucll as equality and loyalty have also
been essential to the nation that emerged S~OIIIthe ~nodernizationprocess. Modernization and
nationhood are closely related and the most appropriate political str~ictitreto achieve advanced
modernization is the nation-state.
Another scliolar Stcin Rokltan has proposed a long~tect'~lrccwllicll places some important
variables in the ~nedtevaland early modern periods. In the modern situation, he accounls ibr
tlie accelerated nation building in the nineteenth and twentieth centuries by reference to six
factors: i) con~binarionol' rill-al and i~rbalivesources, ii) spread ancl localization of
industrialization, iii) pressure towards centralization and ~~~iificntionof the state, iv) piill 01'
imperialist tendencies. v) tension between centre and periphery during the course of etl~nicl
linguistic mobilization, and vi) the conflict between the state and tlie churcli.
Yet another important writer Belledict Anderson in his book Ii?~rgi~~ed Con~mztnitiesemphasizes
the issue of social com~~iunication in tlie early period of the developnient of nationality.
According to him, national co~~sciousness was made possible with the breakdown of three
defining cliaracteristics of pre-modern period: sacred scripts, divine kingship, and conflation
of history witli cosn~ology.Andersoil defines nation as an 'imagined political conimunity'
(imagined as both limited and soveseig~l).His argument about the origin of nationalism leads
to the focus on the tre~nendousiixi:ait ol'print capitalism. The book was the first corntnodity
produced in a massive way. I nis \,?as one area in which early cnpit,llisrn using the new
technology of production was ul~Ictc1n?:~l.e great profits. The el'f'ec~vfpr-;l!t liui~uagewas felt
on national conscio~~s~icss by t l i ~mc:lris of creation ol'a ~lnified1:tnguakc which allowed a
sizeable part oftlte popi~lnlic~n to re,! r ~l;esariie test and identify witli eacl~other. Further, by
giving fixity to langut~ge,it p o s s i b ! ~to develop the idea of the antirlaity of one's nation.
According to Anderson, \vli;il 111:lde ~ l new i ~con~m~~nities i~naginablewas a half-conscious,
but explosive interaction bet\\ic;.li a sysrcrn of prod~~ction and productive relations (capitalism),
a teclinology of comrl~unicationand !Iic type of fatality of 11~11nan linguistic diversity. At a
later stage in history, btate consolidation both at home and in the culo~~ics created groups ol'
people who felt potitically 2nd c~~ltural!)~excluded and by imagining tiie~nselvesas communities
were able to shake of':~licnwle.
Marxist theories envisage nationalism as ;I tnoder11 phenomenon aid posit a more or less
explicit causal connection between tlie development of capitalism and t63c appearance of
nationalism. For Karl Wlnrx, nations and states need to be studied and evali~atedwithin the
context and froni the perspective of their place in class relations and in thc class strirggle
occurring on ilie global scale. For him nationalism was an expression of bourgeois interest.
But tlie boirrgeois 'fhthcsl;ind' did not refer to the country's potentialities for progress or to
tlie nation regarded dcmocrntically, but to tlie aggregate of institutions, customs and laws and
ideas whicli sanctify tlie riglil to property on a considerable scale. For Marx and Engles, the
nation was not a central category ofsocial existence, bi~ta transitory institutior, created by the
bourgeoisie; hence, tlie Sa~iioussentence, 'T'he proletariat has no fatherland'.
However, Marx and Engles were well aware of tlie nationalist phenomenon. As politically
cotllmitted inte[lectuals,thcy lived throi~glithe rroublesome 1840s, 'a period in which nationalist
stri~gglesravaged the Eu 1.opea1iarena'. I n their ~OL-native years, they therefore Iiad to confront
tlie nationalist den~andsof a variety of European people. To understand their attitude towards
nationalism, it is essential to kliow that they subordinated the survival of nations to the
progressive march of history: some people were f'cssils from a long gone past and were,
therefore. objectively co~~titer-revolutionary. Tliese reactionary nations liad to be sacrificed at
the altar of the ~iiighliernational states. T110i1gliin sonle articles, they presentecl ttie national
question as a part of tlie pol iiical sceliario, there was no attempt to explain tlie plienomenon
except perhaps in terms of csucle stereotypes of national character.
tvlarx did not present a theory ofnationalis~ufor tliree main reasons. First, according to him,
tlie prevailing ideas of sociely in nny epoch are tlie ideas of the ruling classes. Hence, the
spread of ideas (such as tliat of~iation;iIis~-ii) tlcpended heavily irpon tlie distribution of economic
power in society. Secondly, Mars":; undcsstandi~igof history as a history of class strirggle
o : ~ follow a bo~~rgeois
implied tliat a proletarian r e v o l ~ ~ t islio~ilcl one and i~iiposea Jictatorsliip
of the proletariat on the road to~vi~rcls a communist society. Tlie stateless society of Marx had
no roo111for nationalism since nationalisnl's m:~inaim was the establistiment of a state and not
its abolition. Tliirdly. Marx did not givc uttcl- tio on to nationalisni because he felt tliat neither
capitalist relations of production, I I ~ J 11:1lion3!ity,
F religion, etc. should obstri~cttlic liberation
of people qs Iiu~iia~i beings. 7'lie ;~l.oletiirialsliould transcelid n a t i o ~ ~identities
al and be able to
recog~~ize itscll'as a part of the big illmily oI~nanIiind.
tloivever, by the turn oStlic centiIs!.i. tlic vi~idicationOFtlie rights o f tlie nations cliariged tlie
Marxist view on the national questit~n.111tlic Seco~idInter~iational,the national qnesrion was
ceritral in tlie political agcncla. U'itl~intlic Austro- Marxist tridition, a serious atte~iiptwas
~iiadeto conw to ter~rlswith tlie tlirorctical problems posed by the category o f nation. Otto
[ J B L I C ~presentcd a theory oi'nation:!!is~ii bascd on tlie idea of ~iationalcharacter and national
culture, tliougli lie also used rlie clul>iuusidc:~tliat 1.1rttionshave a historical destiliy to firlfil. A
more i~ifluentialdelinition of nnlii!nalism was given by Stalin. In hiurx-isna anti /he N~rtionrrl
()l~c,sliot~, lie emphasized the siniult;lncoi~scoalescence of four e l e ~ i ~ e n(Ir~ngttagc,
ts territory,
economic life a1.d psychic l'or~na!;iui) ill n l i historicnl ly constituted commu~iityof culture.
Lenin adopted n niorc I'lcsiblc dc!ir,::!ion ol'tlic nation?and nltllougli 11c was lilte most Marxists
i n favour ol'tlie cre:ltion ol" la:.!;.: pt!!i[li,al units, yet lie endolased the princil~leof self-
dc.termination oiopg~.cssedn;lti#_:!;::. ;!! !c::al in l:licor)l.
In tlie wealth of writings tliat Emmanuel Wallerstein has dedicated to the world systcm, he
has occasionally toi~cliedupon the national question. Wallerstein insists on the invented or
constructed character of the nation. According to him, 'tlie nation hinges around one of tlie
basic structural features of tlie world economy', tliat is 'the politic superstructure of this
historical systeni, the sovcreig~istates that for111 and derive froni the 'inter-state system'. A
nation derives from tlie political structuring of tlie world systelii. In otlier words, statehood
preceded nationhood. Tlie nation is 'in no sense a primordial stable social reality, but a complex
clay like liistorical production of tlie capitalist world economy'.
Anothcr original Marxist approach to nationalism has been expounded by Miroslav I-irocli. In
his boolc Socinl Preconditions ofNntionrr2 Revivul of Ez~ropc.,he lias proposed a class analysis
of the 111odet.nnation as well as the role of cultural development. I-le distinguishes tliree mail1
states in tlie develop~iieiitof modern society: i) an early period in which the transition fro111
feudalislii to capitalis~ntook place. Tliis stage con~prisedof the figlit against absolute
monarchies and tlie starting of boiirgeois revolt~tions;ii) tlie second stage coincided witli tlie
victory and consolidation of capitalism as well as the appearance of an organized worl<irig
class ~novelnent;and i i i ) di~ringthe 20th century, there is a process of world wide inlegration
and unprecedented developme~itof mass co~iimunication.At a cultural level, eacli nationalist
movement runs through tliree phases: i) the period of scliolarly interest, ii) period of patriotic
agitation and iii) period of niass movement.
However, tlie Marxist tradition generally Iias been extremely suspicious ofnationalisni, tliougli
for tactical reslsotis they have often made Llse of national senti~iientsto achieve socialist
objectives. In co~iclusion,one can agree witli Toni Nairn that 'the theory of nationalism
represents Mal-xistn's great historical failure'. Tlie develop~iientsin tlie 1960s in whicli socialist
countries foi~glitbitteriy against each otlier alorig nationalist lines opened 111e eyes of some
Marxists to tlie reality of national interest. With tlie collapse of tlie Soviet Block ill 1989 and
the disintegration oi'tlie USSR i ~1991,
i this issue lias collie to the forefront again. At prcsent,
few really believe tliat Marxisni can provide a genuine tlieory of nationalism.
The Gellnerian model of nationalist developtnent strongly emphasized that nationalism has
its roots in the new industrial order and that nothing before this period - i.e. agrarian society -
can be equated to nationalism, because political units were not defined in tertils of cultural
boundaries. Since for Gellner nations can only be defined in terlns of the age of nationalism,
he cannot conceive of the nation as an imaginative vision created by intellectuals in order to
legitimize tlie medieval (agrarian) state (monarcliy) in Western Europe. His other emphasis is
on modernization in the form of popitlation explosion, rapid urbanization, labour migration,
penetration of local econoniies by global economy etc. He also admits that the Protestant
Reformation nii~sthave had an impact on nationalism as did colonialisn~and imperialism.
John Breuilly in his book Nalionalism cmdStcrtc accepts the existence of nations and nationalist
sentinielits in medieval Europe, but he restricts nationalisn~to the modern period and associates
it with the development of modern state and of the international state system. ~ationalismis
understood as a form of politics that arises in close association with the development of the
state. In other words, in all its history, tlie modern state has shaped nationalist politics. Giddens
defines nationalism as 'the existence of sylnbols and beliefs which are either propagated by
elite groups or held by many of tlie members of regional, ethnic or ling~tisticcategories of a
population and which imply a con~milnitybetween them'. Nationalism for Giddens is a modern
phenomenon sternrning from the aftermath of the French revolution. He also insists that the
European nationalism is a category of it own and that it sliould not be generalized to other
areas without reference to what he calls '\vorld tin~e'.Natio~lalismwas a response to certain
'needs and dispositions' whicli would appear at a time when as a result of the mass
commoditification of time and space, the individual lost his ontological security.
Sirnultaneously, he also agrees that nationalism is connected with class do~ninationand that
the uneven develop~nentof capitalis~nstrongly influenced the origin of oppositional
national ism.
Another writer Paul Brass insists that ethnicity ant1 nntionalism are the product of modcrnity
and emphasizes its constructed character. According to hini, cultures are fabricated by elite
groups who use raw materials fro111 different groups to create ethnics and nations. By using
these representations, the elite airn at ensuring their cconomic or political advantages for
themselves. Brass's theory states that ethnic identity and modern nationalism arise out of
specific types of iliteraction between the leadership of centralizing states and the elites from
non-dominant ethnic groups, especially but not exclusively on the peripheries of those states.
Michael Mann sees himself as a modernist, although he accepts the existence of more or less
conscious ethnicity and proto-nations before modern times. To account for the development
of nationalism, it is necessary to refer to a11 the four sources of social powers; namely, economic,
political, ideological and milita~y.In the first phase which began in the 16th century, ideological
power dominated. It was in the shape of religion and it gave form to proto-nations like Protestant
England. The second phase corntnenced in 1700 and it can be defined as a 'commercial statist'
phase; it was characterized by a further diffusiori of' proto-national identities, It roughly
corresponded to Anderson's idea of 'print capitalism'. In tlie tliird phase, military power
dominated and propelled nationhood. By tlie beginning of the 19th century, most of the western
nations were already in full sight. Finally, the industrialist phase of the nation encouraged
three types of nations: state reinforcing, state creating and state subverting. According to
Mann, nationalisl~~ appeared heavily mediated by the role of the state. Industrialization was
not the principal cause of nationalism; in fact it arrived too late. According to Mann, there
were two principal causes: on the one hand, tile emergerlce of conimercial capitalism and its
universal social classes, and on tlie other, the cmcr;;t:?icc of modern state and its professional
arliied forces and administrators. Con.joincc1 by !hc fiscal-military pressure exerted by
geopolitical rivalry, they produced tlie po1itii:s oi'popular representation and tliese formed
several varieties of ~nodeninationalism.
In slioi-t, nationalism is a modem plienomenon tl~ougliits rise has been ridden with a con~plexity
of factors.
Nationalisrii lias fo~llidexpression through the medium of modern nation-states which were the
product of inally f'orces and struggles. The principle factors responsible for the rise of
nationalist states liave been as follows:
iv) the desire for peace, order iind security in an age marked by bloodslied and violence
vi) the doctrine ofterritorial sovereiglity which provided tlie I<ingstlie most convenient weapon
to combat tlie clni~nsof rivals or religious authorities. The idea ofone unified legal system
affording order, consistcncy and certainty in tlie governing of all social relations within a
given ~lationalarea rilacle a very strong appeal.
Based LIPOII the above factors, the growth of states on nationalistic lines started from
England and Western E ~ ~ r o pand
e spread to different continents and region. To have a
clear iinderstanding of tlie phenomenon, we can sti~dyit under tlie following headings:
As stated above, the nation-state was the product of colnbined influence of Reformation,
Renaissance and commercial revolution. The decline in the authority ofthe church raised the
question of' loyalty 0.1' the individual and by withdrawing this loyalty from the Holy Roman
Enipire, gave it to the monarcli wlio was e~i~erging as the sylnbol and sole reprcsentati\lc of
the nation itself. Tlicse ~iionarcliiestended to consolidate tlieir power in areas united by n
coininon vernacular, religion, culture etc. Tlius, nationality began to hn11 into a state wliich
represented them. As a result, a new principle was introduced in the concept of tlie nation-
state. 'This co~iceptrqjcctcd the I-loly Romari Empire and suppol-ted the formation of states on
tlie basis of nationality.
The FI-enclirevolution in the fag end of tlie 18th century was a turning point in the rise and
growth of the nation-state. Here, tlie stage shifted to central Europe. The declaration of the
national assembly, rights of III~II, location of sovereignty in the nation, abolition of feudal
legacies, confiscation of church property to meet the national debt, formation of the national
education policy, the-national flag, the national anthem, and the war fought for the glory c
tlie nation -all these thing led natiot-ialism in France to its pinna~Ie.In 1792 when Napoleor!
Bonaparte begati the national revolutionary striiggles, national consciousness was almost absent
in Europe. But as the national wars increased and a large popion of Belgium, Netherlandsa '
Germany and Italy came under French occupation, it led to a t'eaction w1iicl.l found expression
in 11ationalism.There was an upsurge in German nationalism. The defeat of Germany in 1806
made Fichte and Hegel staunch enemies of France and ardent supporters of German nationalism.
It led to the belief that politics cannot be ignored at the cost of philosophy:The Nepoleonic
wars helped imn~enselyin awakening the ~iatiotialconscioirs~iessof tlie German State. Tlie
Ger~nnnState wanted to stand at an equal level with France and England. Fichte held the view
that economic progress was 111e basis of political unity and this could be achieved only through
state socialism. 'The concept of nation as propounded by Hegel, the state socialism of Lassale
and Bismarlc had its roots in Fichte. In Germany, the nation-state was not only a political
theory, but etnerged as a philosophy of life. Hegel combined the state with the will of the
nation. He called the state as the march of God on earth and by giving a mystical base to tlie
s e dNazism in the 20th century in t l ~ e
nation, justified an absolute state which was ~ t ~ i s ~ iby
nanle of ~iationalsocialism.
While in Europe, the nation state meant a unified state on the basis of mutual freedom and its
defence, it meant something different in America. The Alnericall colonies felt that all their
en'o~-tsand conqLlests had led to the riches ofthe home countries. When they became conscious
that they were not worlting for tl~emselves,but for the benefit of those who had never left their
colilfortable homes, they revolted. Their first slogan was 'no taxation without representation'
whicll subsecli~entlychanged into full war of independence. This resulted in the formation of
new states and national identities. Out ofthe contradiction between national feeling and liberty,
and self-interest, tl~eywere forced to severe old bonds and create new ones. Hence, the nation-
state meant severing old national bonds and creating new ones. This ended the colonial rule
and the creation of inany nation-states in the Amcrican continent.
In the 20th ccntury, the period between the two world wars, the Russian Revolution and the
rise o f Fascism were important landmarks in tlie spread of nationalist ideas from Europe to
the non-european lands of Asia, Africa and Latin America. Collectively, they set in [notion
the process of national liberation movements in Asia and Africa, as a result of which many
countries got independence from the imperialist powers of Europe. Such revolutionary changes
played a vital role in developitig a new form of nationalism. New nations like China, India,
Pakistan, Egypt, Vietnam grew on tpe world scene which gave a new meaning to the concept
of nationalism. The circunislances which gave birth to these nations were quite different from
those of the West. These were the co$ wcre subjugated by imperialist countries
like England, France. Spain, Nolland had been exploited. Imperialist
countries considered them their and pilfered. They destroyed
their independence and too weak to do any harm
to imperid'
r ism.
A new fort11of nationalism and a new meaning otthe concept was born in countries like India,
China and the Arab lands. Tllougl~the new concept o f nationalism which became tlie basis of
new states derived much of its ideology and political theory from the West, yet it adapted the
theory to its own historical experiences, its particular circumstances and to its own revolt
against imperialism. The basis of the new nationalisn~was that it began with an instinctive
and xenophobic hatred for imperialism, a hatred of its representatives, its nationals and anyone
affiliated with them. It was a simple Iiatred against those wl~ohad occupied their lands by
force, exploited their riches by force, crushed their governments, enslaved their people and
who had not hesitated to destroy, plullder and steal. This hatred was expressed violently in
killings, destructiol~and assassinations sucli as the Boxer liebellion in South Africa as well as
in peacefill, non-violent forms in India under Gandhi. Thesc states were conscious of
irnpel.ialisn~,aimed at its destruction and the destruction of accompanyit~gevils such as
conquests, oppression, enslavement, stifling of liberty, exploitation of riches and sowing of
racial, regional, commtinal and class distinctions. At the same time, nationalis111liere was also
a creative force wl~ichaimed at building a nation based upon the principles of liberty,
independence, economic justice and national unity. It viewed national unity as a creative
force which ico~~ld stim~ilatethe people to colitrib~ltetheir share in national reconstruction.
This unity meant two things: i) illiity of geographical parts, and ii) unity in the diversity of
religion, class, caste, and comli~unalelelnents. These states pledged to work for the welfare of
all classes, castes and groups because all of them participated and contributed their lot in the
struggle for fi-eedom. From tlie international point of view, these nation-states opposed ri~ilitary
bases, ilndile alien interference into the affair ot'other states, apartheid and believed in non-
alignment and international cooperation.
A peculiar feature of anti-colo~~ial nationalis111 has been that in most cases, tliere is no sense in
which a nation precedcs the elnergetice of the state. Here, a difference can be made between
the initial form of nationalism as a move~nentdirected against the colonial rulers and engaged
in the struggle for independence and nationalism's subsequent transformation into a political
discourse e~nployedby new leaders in the* attempt to construct a nation capable of sustaining
the legitimacy of tlie state they inherited from the colonial era. After gaining independence,
these colonial states established new (constituent) states, drew their borders, built up their
capital cities and established a central administration and political institutions to suit tlieir
ecoriolnic needs. As a result, each cololly was I? 'collection of peoples and old states, or
fragnients of these, brougl~ttogether witliin the same boundaries'. All these states were n
mosaic of different ellinic comniunities and tribes. Thus, the artificial and imposed character
of the states in sucl~territories accounted for most ofthe troubles after obtaining independence.
Tlie major problern faced by lhese states has been their fragility. The newly created nation-
states initiated a struggle to replace tlie pre-national ties with a feeling of national identity and
loyalty. But in many cases, tlie euphoria accompanying the celebration of freedom soon turned
sour. The reasons for this stem fsoni the incapacity of the new states to eliminate ecoliomic
backwardness a11d the difficulty of creating a coherent civil society out of a population as
heterogeneous in itself as in relation to the stale. Many of them imable to sustain the claims of
tlie people turned towards the USA or the erstwhile USSR. But this meant becoming dependent.
Also, independence liberated ethnic nationalisln witliin the emergent slate nationalisni and in
some cases - like India, Pakistan, Malaysia, Indonesia, Nigeria etc - tlireatened anti-
colonialism nationalism whose objective was the conservation ofthe state and the replacetnent
of the colo~iialn~lers.While MLIS~~IIIS cal led for a separate nation-state chal lengilig die integrity
oT the Indian state, caste, class, ethnic origin, religion, language formed separate layers of
identity that added to the co~i~plexity ofcreating a single nation within an inherited arbitrarily
designed state. After independence, enorrnous problems were faced in preserving the nation-
state. Tlie socio-political environment elevated some leaders like Gandhi, Nehru, Sukarno,
I
Nasscr to t l ~ ecategory of prophet liberators. Yet, the vast gap between tlie Western educated
elites and the bulk of a I I I O S ~illiterate
~~ popillation increased after independence. Most of
them did not cliange the struciurc of the states and retained colonizers' privileges. The fragility
of theit-govern~nentsled to an increasing hostility as well as ~nove~nents seeking independence
of ethnic n~inoritieswithin establislied states. Independence brought civil war in Sudan, Zail-e, I
Chad. Nigeria, Kenya, Ghana, Ceylon and a silt between Eastern and Western wings of Paltistan
ultimately resulting in tlie creation of Bangladesli - a new nation-state.
'The major task confronted by the nationalist intellectuals has been to create a nation to I
legitin7ize the slate. But given the lieterogeneous character of their societies, conflict is
ilnavoidable which stems from two sources: i) tlie differences arising among tlie etlinic groups
included in tlie most arbitrarily'created states inherited from the colonial rulers, and ii) the
wide gap between a small aftluent elite and a large number of people living in conditions of
poverty. 111tlie first case, nationalism is employed as a weapon to ignite old antagonisms and
disputes, and in the second case, it could be used to promote an alternative image ofthe nation
or channelled to blame the Wcst for all the troubles.
-
Since tlie Second World War, three developments have affected 1:lie concept of nationalism
which has been pointing to different directions. The first was a corisolidation trend wl~icli
made tlie nation-state the niain source of political authority. Tlie domination of the nation-
state, the most powerfill fonn of political organisation, lias been extended by the virtual end
of tlie colonial en~pires.'l'1ie1.e were 5 1 states in 1945 whereas by 1992, this number had gone
up to 185. Moreover, the power of the national governments in many new states, though
shaky in the beginning, has been consolidated in the 1970s mid 198Os, particularly in third
world countries lilie Zaire, Nigeria, Malaysia and Pakistan. Tlie coming tip of India illustrates
one of tlie great virtues of tlie nation-state as a fort11 of organization wliicli can secure Inass
cornpliancc of policies with only a minim~in> of coercion.
'Tlte second development relates to ethnic resurgence. Alongwith - the consolidation of the
tiation state, there has been a revival of lninority nationalist movemel~tsclaiming nieasures of
autonomy within the state or even indepuidence fiom it. Sucl~conflicting trends have increased
since the 1970s when the U K saw tlie growth ol'nalionalist parties in Scotland and Wales,
France ex~serienccddemands for ~iieasurosol'cultural autonomy from groups in Britain and
Corsica. Quebecois tiationalists wanted independence fro111Canada, More recently, India and
Sri Lanka are also facing problems ol'KasI11niri~andTamil nationalists respectively, leading
to a certain aniount of bloodslied. Ahcr the disintegration of tlie USSR and the East Europe
Commilnist bloc, ethnic resurgence lias spread like un inFection. The rise of separatist and
ethnic agitations is partly due to the loss of group idclitity ofcertain riiinorities and partly, due
to the fact that the principle of state creation since thc Second World War had notliing to do
with sel F-detern~ination.The creation of new nation-states was more because of the forces of
decolonization, revolution or intervention of outside powers. The result was that soon afler
independence, tensions developed betcvcen the component parts ofthe independence movement
in coilntries like India, Algeria. Again thc intervention of outside powers had been obviously
non-nationalistic. The split of Soviet Union into its constituents' parts and the disintegration
of Yi~goslaviahnve sliow~ithat these states were i~nperfectlyintegrated. The third develop~nent
relates to the process of globalization. During tlie last two decades, the world has become
liiglily inter-depetident, Today, tlie nation-state lias to operate in an inter-dependent world.
Information, money, weapons, technology, pollution, values, radiation, food, computers, drugs,
disease, data - all flow rapidly around the globe giving the individual nation-states more
opportunities, but also posing more threat to-their identity. Siniultaneously, the role of
international and supranational organizations like the UNO, the World Bank, the International
Monetary Fund, GATT and Non-governmental Organizations is increasing by leaps and bounds.
In this connection, tlie past two decades have seen tlie emergence ofa good deal of spec~llation
about tlie possible transniutalion of the nation-state system into sonle kind of a new world
order. Tke cn~cialqi~estionis whether wc are moving towards a colnmon culture or whether
globalization will strengthen a particular culture. I-iobsbawm predicts that the future is not
going to be contaitied within the litnits of 'nation-states' either politically, economically,
culti~rallyor linguistically. It will be supranational. It will see nation-states or nations in the
being resisting, adapting or being absorbed or dislocated by tlie new siipranatio~lalrestr~lcturing
of tlie globe. On the other hand, according to Birth, ruucl~of sucli speculation is based upon
wishfill tl~inlting.Inspite of globalization and tlie quest for global culture, the current
proliferation of struggles for self-deten~iinationin several parts of the world indicate that
even the democratic nature of the nation-states and granting s~~fficient autonomy to the
minorities within a nation-state lias not solved the probleln and the use of force still remains
the key feature in the definition of nationalis111.Tlie role of nationalism as a Inass ~novenlent
lias played a crucial role in the conscription oi'large arn~iesand in tlie waging ofwar. Currently,
nationalist11 appeals to a wide ranging sector of popillation and stands as a dynamic agent that
relies on violence as well as proniotes peacefill Inass mobilization.
In the context of globalization, Rlie reluctance to give away sovereignty and loss of control
over doinestic matters will increase tlie presence of nationalism in the nation-states' political
discourse. Here, a growth of colitradictory forces can be seen: on the one hand, to participate
in international forums and instit~~tions
and the search for tlie establishment of conimon policies
with other members of the \vorld community, and on the other, to protect tlie interests of the
nation-state. For example. the Ellropean Union has not reduced the preservation of the integrity
and identity of tlie individual nation-states.
Globalization unleashes a pressing demand or identity among those individuals who regard
the totality of inherited ideas, values, beliefs and knowledge that constiti~tetlie shared basis o f
their lives its threatened by the expansion of alien cultures endowed with greater resources. In
Inany cases, nationalis111elnergks as a response to progressive homogenizatiol~and represents
a struggle to defend identity politics. Thus, thoiigh the process of globalization is intensifying,
there-is no global identity wliic11 would suit to f~tlfiltlie needs of an otherwise diverse population.
TIILIS,natior;alisln will survive the wave of globa I'~zation.
The above disci~ssionon nationalism can be suninied up as follows:
One of the no st distinctive features of nationalism is its capacity to bring people together
fro111different 'social and cult~lrallevels', It is tlie invention of tlie ruling classes to maintain
the i~nconditionalloyalty of the masses and ~iiakethem believe that they have much in coln~non
witli tlie ruled. Tliis is one oftlie basic factors in ~lnderstandingthe persistence of national is~ii.
The different theories oi'~iationalislndiscitssed in this unit try to solve tlie ~iiysteryas to wlicn
the nation first appeared. The perennial theories concentrate on the history of natio~iswhicli
are described as ancient and immemorial. They see tlie nation as a c~~ltilral coni~nunity,rooted,
organic, natural and as a single whole. The ~nodcrnisttlieorics, whether social, comm~~nicntion
based, economistic or politico-ideological, see the nation as a political community, a modern
and social conslr~~ct designed for an age of revolution. They associate nationalis~nwitli
n~oveme~its like Renaissance, lielbrniation, comn~ercialization,industrialization, urbanization
as well as coloni~lis~n arid inipcrialism.
I-listorically, tlie iden of nation-state began in England, followed by Western Europe such as
France, Germany a~idItaly. Tlic formation ol' nation-state in Eastern Europe lctl to the
dissolution of'tl~reeenipires: 1-lapsburg, Ottoman arid Asian which resulted in the creation of
a number of states sucli as Poland, Czechoslovakia, Lithuania, Latvia, Romania etc. Tlic
American Kevol~ltioncretlted a new kind ~Tnationalis~n wliicli meant severing old bonds arid
creating new ones. During tlie 20th century, anti-colonial nationalism in Asia and Africa
began will1 all instinctive ar~dxt.nopliobic hatred ofilnperialism, colonialism, racism, apartheid
etc. The post Second World War period saw tlie tri~~~iipli of tiationalism and the right of sel f-
deterniination of nationalism. This gave rise to a number of new nation-states in Asia and
Mica.
Since tlie Second World War, three developments liave affccted nationalism: consoliclation,
li.ag~ncntationand globalization. Up to 1970, riiany states which had gained fieedolii after the
Second World War had been able to consolidate tlicir position. But along witli that, tliere had
becn a revival OF minority national movements and ethnic resurgence, both in tlie advanced
countries like the UK, Canada, France and also in ~~nderdevelopcd countries like India and Sri
L,anka. And last b ~not ~ ttlie least, the process of globalization I~asbecn posing a serious threat
to the national identity of tlie states, 1-lowever, nationalism lias been able lo meet all tliese
cliallenges and still remslilnstlie dominant rorce in tlie world.
23.7 EXERCISES
1) Explain ill your ow11words what do you understand by nationalism.
I
8) D i s c ~ ~ conteliiporary
ss developtnerits in the arena of nationalis~n.
UNIT 24
Structllrc
24.1 M u l t i c ~l ti~ralism:
~ 'The Concept
24.1.1 Tlie ldeal of Non-Discrirninatio~i
24.1.2 Protecting Cultural Diversity
24.1.3 Mnlticiilt~u.alisin,Pluralism and Diversity
24.2 Multic~~lturalism and Li beralis~ii
24.3,.1 Critique 01' Liberal Delnocracies
24.2.2 Mulliculturalism as a Liberal Theory of Minority Rights
24.3 The Idea of Differentiated Citizenship
24.3.1 Different Kinds of Special Rights
24.3.2 Differentiating Between Minorities
24.4 Critiques of'Mi~lticulturalis~n
24.5 M ~ ~ l t i c ~ ~ l t ~ ~ rAn
a l i Assessment
stii:
24.6 Summary
24.7 Exercises
Within n~~~lticulturalisrn, this concern for the fate of diversity is supplemented by the belief
that tlie presence of Inany different cultures enriches our lives and enables critical self-
understanding. It is argued that no culture can "eyer express the f~illrange of human
potentialities" (Parekh 1998:207), and each articu~ates'onl~ an aspect of it. Consequently, the
presence of many c i ~ l t ~ ~contributes
res to the "overall' richness of society" (ibid.). Different
cultures enable us to experiel~cedifferent ways of living and thinking, and this makes us
aware that our cultural horizon is only one of the many that have given meaning to lives of
countless Inen and women. Tljis co~isciousnessof the finitude of our existence pro~nptsus to
take a critical look at the beliefs and institutional structures of organization that we have
inheriteaand perhaps accepted (Parekh 1998:212 arid Taylor 1 994:72). Will Kymlicka suggests
filrtlier that diverse cultures offer concrete alternatives: since diverse cultures present diverse
projects and systems of external and internal organization, they provide individuals with
substantive options and choices that they niay explore as they define what is good and desirable
(Kymlicka 1991: 165).
For all these reasons, multici~lt~~ralistsprize cultural diversity and consider it a deeply cherisl~ed
value that must be protected and promoted in society. What needs perhaps to be underlined
here is that the diversity that m u l t i c u l t u r ~ l i sseeks
~ ~ ~ to promote is that of cnltures. While
Iiberalisnl focuses on diversity ofthought, belief and perspective, mi~lticulturalislnis concerned
about the viability and status of diverse cultures and cotnmunities that are associated with
them. Further, it is the faEsfTn.linority cultures that face external pressures to assimilate or
disintegrate that multici~ltiiralisrnis most concerned about, and by attending to them it aims to
protect diversity of cultures. Since the concern all along is for culti~raldiversity it is the
community rather than the individual that has merited greater attention within the framework
of rni~lticulturalis~~i.
lnformed with this perspective, m~~ltic~~lturalisln is 1110re tl~ana statetilent of value pluralism.
It does not merely suggest that different value systems exist in society and individuals may
favour or comlnit then~selvesto any of them. Instead, ~n~~lticult~~ralisin argues that each c~llture
incorporates a distinct value, different from that which is expressed in another culture. Further,
the life of an individual is shaped to a considerable extent by the valtle fiarneworlc of the
culture to which he belongs. The custotns and institutionalized practices ofthat cillture structure
his preferences and judgements. What ~ ~ ~ ~ l t i c ~ ~ l tries
t ~ ~ rthen
a l i stomprotect is the cultural
context of experience. Its policies are aimed at ensuring that minority cultures- their language,
custo~nsand institutions - s~lrviveand are treated as equals in the public domain.
'The element that needs to be emphasized here is that the Inere presence of different religions,
races and languages is not enough for a multicultu~~al delnocracy.'[he latter requires that each
ofthese c~tlti~ralcolnmilnities flourish and receive equal treatment. It is this concern for equality
between diverse cultures and co~n~nunities that is distinctive of multic~~lt~~ralism
and it is this
that sets it apart from the assertions of pluralism. TI1eorists of rnulticulturalisrn argue that a
plural society requires a ~n~iltic~~ltural policy fran~eworkof democracy but this is at the Ievel
of an imperative. In actuality, plural societies may not always head in that direction. Pl~~ralism
at the societal plane tnay co-exist with a state that is mono-cultural, affirming only the culture
of the dominant community. Multiculturalism points to just this predicament and sliows that
Inany liberal de~i~ocracies that tolerate differences in society, nevertheless, discriininate against
minority cultures, It is to rectify such patterns of disadvantage and cultural discrimination
that multiculturalis~nadvocates policies that proniote diversity and heterogeneity in the public
domain.
Within liberalis~nascribed identities are discredited as they are not chosen by the individual.
People are born into tliem and the circun~stancestliat tliey are placed in on account o f these
identities are not of their making. Hence, liberals argue that it is the responsibility ofthe state
to ensure that received identities do not fix roles, positions and opportunities in society. What
liberals value then is the autono~nyof the individual: the freedom to make choices and the
availability of options receives the highest priority in their work. Rights are given to protect
that freedom, particularly against opposition from the state as well as oppression from tlie
colnln~~nity. The con~munity,like the majority in society, is perceived to be an authoritarian
entity tliat constraints and restricts tlie autonolily oftlie person. Hence, it is suspect and receives
no rights. Within liberalism, it is the individual and not the co~nlnunitythat is, therefore,
designated as the bearer of rights.
\
Multic~ilturalismcl~allengesthis liberal understanding of the self with the argument that
tnembership of a cult~lralcoin~nunityis v a l ~ ~ a bto l e the individual. It defines, at least in part,
tlieir personal identity and forms a "context of experience" (Icymlicka 1995: 189). That is,
community membership structure$ individual experience and provides a framework within
which things acquire val~le.One's relationship with other groups in society and their perception
of us is also influenced by colnmunlty membership. Since membership o f a cultural community
forlns an "anchor for self-identifidation" (Margalit & Raz 1990:447) individuals do not, nor
lnLlst they be expected to, enter into tlie public donlain as "unencumbered" selves, devoid of
social identities and a sense of being situated. Contrary to the liberal perception, theories o f
n ~ u l t i c ~ ~ l t u r a largue
i s ~ n that commuuily identities are bound to enter into the public domain
and people rnay bring into political life issues that arise from their cornlnunity ~nembcrsl~ip.
According to Will Kyn~licka,when we expect individuals to bracket their cultural identity,
we in fact deprive then1 of "sometl~ingthat they are reasonably entitled to" (Kynilicka 1995:86).
Multiculturalism, as we argued earlier, begins with the understanding that liberal democracies
have not been able to ensure equal citizenship for all its members. Even though eqilal civil
and political rights have by and large becn given to all, yet, persons belonging to minority
cult~~ral conlnii~nitiesremain disadvantaged in the public arena. Tliey are disadvantaged and
discriminated against because the state, through its laws and policies, endorses the culture ol'
tlie majorily community in society. Tlie policies on language, educatioti, declaration ofliolidays,
dress codes, for instance, reflect the cultitre of tlie majority. At a more fi~ndamentallevel,
cercmo~iialrituals and synibols oftlie state and its departtiients also express the same cultural
orientation. Collectively, actions of the state popularize and sustain the majority cillture and
encourage, directly and indirectly, assimilation into that dominant culture.r In brief,
multiculturalism argues tliat national culture is in actuality rooted in the culture of the
niajority. Consequently, wllen the liberal detnocratic slate protnotes that culture, it privileges
tlie tiiajority cultural community while simultaneously disadvantaging the minority
communities.
The idea that privileging th'e majority culture implies disadvantaging the minority ci~ltilresis
central to multicultural tliouglit. To explaili this flrther with the help ofan exaniple: theorists
of tnulticulti~ralisiiiargue that wheii English is made the official language of the state, then
French language in Canada and the inelnbers of that linguistic group are necessarily
disadvantaged. Tlie Francophones have to learn English - a language that is not their niother
tongue - and excel in it so that tliey can conipete with other people for wlion~English is tlie
first language.,To do this, tliey have to put i n a greater atnount ofeffort than the Anglophones,
and they have also to acquaint themselves with the culture that is associated with the English
language. Parents, who want to ensure that their children have an equal opportunity to occupy
prestigious pbsitions in society, also try to send their children to English medium schools. As
twore and liiore people tnalte tliis choice, English language and cillti~reget popularized. More
and more people lean1 that language, but at tlie same time the number ofpeople who can read
and wrile in the French language also declines. Eventually, tlie citltitre tliat is associated with
the French speaking c01ii1i1ilnitysuffers i l l prestige and support. It becomes increasingly non-
viable. Even the children froin the conilnilnity do not associate with it. As they are exposed to
another culture in school and other public places, they are alienated fiorn it. Thus, through a
variety of processes, tlie French culture and cultural cornrnunity are systematicnlly
disadvantaged.
Tlieorists of ~ n ~ ~ l t i c ~ ~ l t u ruse
- a l iexa~iiples
s~n of tliis sort to show that seeliiingly neutral laws
k~ndpolicies of the state have an itliplicit bias that favours the majority community and
disadvalitages ~iiinoritycultural commu~~itics. Tlic declaration of Sunday as a holiday when
pitblic institutions and businesses are closed iniplicitly favours the Christian comtnunity
nienibers. Witli Sunday as tlie declared p~tblicholiday, a devoi~tChristian can g o the church
For prayers and observe tliis day as the day 01' rest in accordance with the dictates of his
religion. However, a devout M i ~ s l i ~who n , wishes to oi'fer prayers on a Friday afterlioon in
accordance witli his religion, is placed at a disadvantage in this system. Since Friday is a
working day lie, unlike the devout Christian, does not get any time off. Practices of the state,
even tlie liberal state, illus marginalize and discriminate against tlie melnbers of tlie minority
culture. Indeed, they place exter~ialpressures i~ponthe latter to assitnilate into tlie dominant
culture. Since tlie option Sor niinority communities is only to assimilate or disintegrate,
~ n u l t i c ~ ~ l t ~ ~ risa lcritical
i s r n of liberal democracies. It questions the central principles o f liberal
democracy, partici~larlytliu notion of fornial equality and neutrality, and offers in tlieir place
an alternate framework based on tlie idea of group-differentiated riglits and differentiated
citizensliip. Witliil~t l ~ elatter, special riglits are sanctioned for ~iiinoritycultural coni~nu~iities
so that they liiay survive and be treated as equals in tlie liberal state.
24.2.2 Multic~.~
lturalism as A Liberal 'Theory of Minority Rights
M u l t i c ~ ~ l t ~ ~ s arejects
l i s ~ i i the liberal idea of an autonomous, freely choosing, atomized self as
well as tlie beliefthat tlie state is, or must be, ne~~tral bctween different, competing conceptions
o f good life. It begins inslead by locating the individual within a cultural comniunity and
argues that no state is, or can be, completely neutral. Even liberal states that claim to be
neutral make laws on marriage. divorce, property, inlicritance, euthanasia, suicide and a range
of other social activitics. In tach case it endorses and legitimizes one view: for instance, it
may iipliold and recognize only i~idividualclai~iisto property or only nio1ioga1mous marriages.
Legislation o f tliis Itind invariably denies clai~iisof collectively held community property or
polyganiy as a practice. In fact, all such claims and practices are declared illegal. Here, as in
~ n a n yother cases, the laws o f tlie state reflect n conception of what is good and therefore
acceptable. This understanding may confoonii to the conception of good enibodied in sonie
cultures, but may cotiflict witli the practices ofotlier cultural co~n~ni~nities. I-lence, we need to
realize that no state is completely neutral. Tlie liberal principle of neutrality must, therefore,
be replaced by tlie notion oi'"eveliiiandedness" (Carens 1999: 46-50). In place of piirsuing
neutl.ality as tlie desired goal, tlie state riiLlst act so as to be evenhanded towards diverse
'co~nmunities.
'The concept of differentiated citizenship rejects the liberal ideal of universal citizenship.
Multici~lti~ralis~n
maintains that ~ ~ n i v e ~citizenship
~sal assumes that all persons are alike. 'This
ass~~niption of hoinoge~ieityeclipses group diFfcrenccs. It calls L I P O Ithc ~ individual to leave
behind thcir particular identities and see themselves only as citizens ofthe polity. In a society
where soiiie "groi~psare privileged"and otliers marginalized. tliis i~nplicsthat the latter forsake
their identity and take on tlie o ~ ~ t l o oand
k perspective oftlie dominant group- i.e., the ~najority
conimunity. At tlie sanie time. tlie notion ofuniversal citizcnship allows tlie "privileged group
to ignore their group specificity'~Young1990: 165). By enabling the iior~iisand point of
view ofthe privileged majority to appear neutral and ~~niversal, tliis ideal perpetuates 'kcultural
imperial isni" (ibid.).
Tlie idea of group-differentiated citizenship and rights is advocated to hall this process of
assi~iiilationby giving ~iiinorityc i ~ l t ~ ~conini~~iiities
ral rights tliat would enable them to protect
their C L I I L L I ~against
~ pressiires of Iiomogenization llint come from tlie state and society. It rests
on tlie belief that sociely comprises of many different cultural communities. but the state
invariably privileges and endorses tlie culture of one community, which is dcsignnted as tlie
majority. Since this marginalizes and disadvantages other ci11turaIconim~~~iities (the minorities),
special rights may be extended to them. A distinction may, therefore, be made between citizens
on the basis of cultural identity, and this is justified for ensuring equal treatment for all.
\
In additioli to seeking exemptions, niinority coliilnilnities Iiave also sought assistance, by way
of financial and other infra-str~~ctural support, so that their cultilre can be represented in the
pitbl ic arena. Flere, support has ~~suallytalten the form ofassista~iceto establish museums, run
ininority edilcatiorial institutions and hold public festivals. At times, ~iiilioritycommunities
have also detiianded recognition for tlieir distinct cultural practices. In India, for instance,
religious comniunities wanted, and were given, recognitkg for their falllily law. So, today
individuals are governed by tlie personal law oftheir co~nlnunity.Tlie most significant aspect
of clairiis b r I-ecognitionare that co~iiniu~iitiesthroi~gl~
then1 seek endorseni7ent of traditional
cultural practices and institutional structures. Most often. tlie acceptance oftliese clairiis brings
into effect plural structures of jurisdiction and goverliance, Sometimes, traditional norms"
receive.exclusive jurisdiction over tlie members; on other occasions, traditional norms are
placed alotigside tlie laws forniulated by the state. Wliatever be tlie specific form of
arrangement, tliese cultural rights bestow upon tlie com~nunityand its practices a legal status,
thereby riiaking it a lcgitilnate actor in tlie p~tblicdomain.
The third category of*~~~inoriiy riglits is special r~pre~entation riglits. Tlie assi~rnptionbehind
' claims for tliese rights is that minority comriiunities I U L I Sliilve
~ an opportirnity to participate in
the political process, set agendas and voice their specific point of view. As iris Marion Young
argues, "People in different groups ofieo know about somewl~atdifferent institutions, events,
practices and social relations, and often have different perceptio~isof the satne iristitutions,
relations and events. For this reason, ~iien~bers of some groups are sometimes in a better
positio~itliari others to ~~nderstand and anticipate tlie probable consequences of ilnplementing
particular social policies" (Young 1990: l8G). Consequently. their participation is bound to
enrich p ~ ~ b ldiscorlrse
ic while sim~~ltaneously bringing groups that are otherwi$e marginalized
into tlie mainstream. It is filrther argued that tlie deliberate inclusion of ~ a r i o u sgroups,
paltic~llarlyoppressed minorities, can be a powerful tool for defiriingpi~blicliorms and creating
deliberative consensus.
Special representation is. thus. seen as a way of including hnd empoweriqg ~narginalized
grorlps so that they have a sense of participating and contribiuting to tlie policy outcomes. At
tlie same titlie, it is expected to enrich policy maliing by bringing ill the experie~icesand
perspectives of diverse groups i l l society. It is this double advantage that justifies claims for
specinl representation for c o n ~ ~ n ~ ~ n i In
t i eIndia,
s . special representation was granted to the
Sclie~uledCastes and Scheduled tribes by the Constitution and this gesture was tnotivated by
the need/to iriclude popirlaliot~sthat had hitherto been excluded fi.0111the public and political
cIo111ai11.
Within m ~ i l t i c u l t ~ ~ r u l at
i s ~the
i ~ ,general level, special rights are defended for minorities but
rarely is it said that all the tliree kinds of rights mnst be iiven to all minorities within the state.
Most tlleol-ists agree that these rights are intended only for the rninoritics that have been
Ilistorically oppressed. Also, which set of rights should be granted to oppressed nlil~oritieshas
to be deterlnined by looking at the specifics of tlie case. Different contexts dernand different
rclnedies, and wl~ichwould be tlie appropriate course in a given situation will depend upon
the Ikind of ~ninorityit is, its experience of discrimination and the nature of t l ~ estate. So we
cannot have a general theory ol'n~inorityrights.
1
The multic~~ltura a~ialysisofculture-based discri~ninatiotiin liberal deinocracies has received
wide attention ir recent times. I-lowevcr, its concept of differentiated citizenship and the
accornpanyi~~g d .fei~seof'special rights for minorities has coille il~idera great deal of resistance.
'There are four ki11dsof i s s ~ ~that e s the critics a f multiculturalis~nhave raised. First, it l ~ a been s
~ ~ ~ . a l empnwers communities and traditional structnres of
argued that the ~ n ~ i I t i c i ~ I tli.a~nework
authority. It gives communities authority over the individual and allows rlleni to conti~itte
with existing practices in the name of protecting com~nunityculture, 'This sanction given to
comm~~nities (ind their practices can be, and often is, used to quell internal differences and
promote confor~~liity with existing practices and the views of traditional leaders. As a
consequence, individuals as well as marginalized groups within the comn~unity,like women,
are placed at a idisadvantage. T~ILIS, wliile m u l t i c ~ ~ l t ~ ~ r addresses
a l i s ~ i ~ tlie issue of equality
between groupg it neglects the eqi~allyimportant concert1 for equality within the Sroup.
Second, wlli le discussing the q~lestionof special riglits for minorities, ln~~lticillturalis~n
assullies
that each corn~l~unity is a homogeneous entity with a clearly identifiable ~i~embersliip. This
11otionof c o ~ i i n ~ ~ ~filrtlier
n i t y assumes that i~ldividualshave a specific identity and they can,
on that basis, be located as ~ u e ~ u b eof r s a specific cultural conimunity. This tendency to slot
the individual in one co~nmunity,the critics argue, may have been appropriate in the late
nineteenth and the early twentieth century. But today, the individual is continuously exposed
to so many different ciilt~~ral and social influences tliat we cannot envisage bounded cultures
and comniunities. Besides, individuals ~lsi~ally see themselves as ~iiembersof many different
communities. For exaniple, tliey Iilay, in differen1 contexts, identify thelnselves as Indians,
Hindus, Brah~iiinsand Wonien. Their concerns as lnelnbers of each of these communities
nlay indeed be different and at times, even incompatible. We need, therefore, to begin witli a
~izoreco~iiplexpicture of the individual and her comlnunity menibersliip.
Fourth, theorists of tlie marxist persuasion particularly argue that rnultic~~lturalis~n neglects,
the issue of redistribution. It conceives minority ~~iarginalization narrowly a s a culti~ral
plieno~~ze~~on requiring cttltural remedies in tlie fbrm ofrecognition and protection of minority
cultures. As a conseqLtences, it looses sight of tlie ~nultipleways in which discriniination of
minorities occurs and manifests itself in society. 111fact, its analysis takes attention away from
tlie urgent task of seelting redistl.ibution of resources and opportunities in society.
Two, tlie 1110stserioi~sproblem before niulticult~~ralis~ii today is how to protect cu1tiu.al diversity
without negating freedom 1:)r the individual and equaliiy for all persons. Advocates of
~ i ~ i ~ l t i c ~ ~ l t address
~ l r a l i this
~ ~ iiss~le
i by suggesting tliat the community must develop institutions
ul'democratic deliberation so that tlie voice of niar$inalized groups within the co~nlnunitycan
be Iieard and accom~iiodatedinternally. Others maintain tliat tlie state could prescribe a
frameworlc o f ~ n i ~ i i r n uriglits
l i ~ tliat cannot be violated. Within that framework, communities
might deteniiine how best to govern its nlembers. Even tliougl~tlie suggested alternatives are
not entirely adequate for dealing with tlie complex nature of issues raised by the concern for
fieedotn and equality, yet, these responses indicate and affirln that ~n~lltic~llt~tralism is not
simply a theory of community rights. Even tlio~~gli ~iiultic~llti~ralists
have most often been
concerned with questions of inter-group equality, tlie concern for intra-group equality is not
absent within it. Indeed, haviiig placed the first set of issues on tlie agenda of liberal
democracies, ~iiultici~lturalis~~~ is increasingly addressing the qi~estior~
of equality within the
colnmunity.
'The significatice of multicult~~ral political theory is that it has drawn our attention to the
processes of cultural discrimination witl~inliberal denlocracies, and compelled us to re-think
tlv ideals that have been cherislied within liberalism. In particular, it has prompted us to
consider whether individual rights, indivisible state sovereignty and uniform citizenship can
effectively ensure equality for all in a pliiral society. It is by virtue of setting this agenda tliat
tn~iltic~llt~~ralism
lias today become one of tlie most influential strand of democratic theory.
'The concept of niultic~~turalistn and tlie various theories associated with it have become quite
inportalit in contemporary lives, Mi~lticulti~ralis~n addresses itself to tlie basic issue of
discriliiination in society; especially in the context of marginalised culural communities such
as the minorities. Multic~~lturalism, therefore, elliphasizes group specific riglits. It lays stress
on societal/instit~ttionalarrangements for minority cillti~resto survive and flourish.
24.7 EXERCISES
I) Explain the concept of multiculturalism in your own words.
2) Critically exatnine ~i~i~lticiilturalism-liberalism
interlkce.
25.1 INTRODUCTION
Fascisln llas been a signiticant twentieth cent~lrydevelopment. Orginating from Italy and
further nlaturing as a11 operational political doctrine in Gemiany, fascism could apparently be
an enduring reality owing to its innate ability in simplifying "the complexities of political
life" to the advantage of the proponents of fasqism, Tl-iis was achieved by catering to the
exigencies_- -
4
of "us" and "theyyywhere in "they" ere not only pro-iected as 'adverseries', but
essentially 'inferior' as well. This political dualism, aggressively articulated by fascism, llas
however come to stay evcn after the collapse of taly and Germany after the second world
war. It is in this context tliat the 'Epitaph on Fascism' as presented by Hugh Trever-Roper that
fascism "began in 1922-23...........ca~neof age in the 1930s...........ended in 1945" sounds too
.
pre rnatilre to easily ~*econcilcwith. The post-war political formations in both western and
eastern Europe have been significant pointers to this trend. In fact. the ascendancy of un-
responsive state authority in tlie world coupled with hyper socio-cultural polarities of "LIS"
and "they" and ail sorts of intolerances in ititcr-personal and com~nunitarianbehaviour clearly
suggest tliat fascism is not only relevant today, but it represents for inore coinplex and perverse
dimensions that it originalty displayed and carried out. It, therefore, poses inore severe a
challe~~ge to mankind today than ever before.
Tliis unit addresses itselfto all tliese enu~neratedisswes, It seeks to present both the 'original'
and 'altered' faces of Fascislil with a view to fa~i~iliarsing yo11with the changing ideas, facts
and processes of fascism, besides enabling you to creatively dispel these trends with the help
of a better i~nderstandingof tlie essence of life and a greater appreciation of the pluralist
reality that trill y envelopes ~nankindthrough out the world.
The stated mood of revolt drew l~eavilyfrom tlie anti-thesis developed by Social Darwinist
(e.g. Spencer) against the prevailing liberal ideas which they esset~tiallyperceived as out~noded.
Social Darwinists, pa~*ticularly, articulated a 'n-~i~scular
philosophy' which helped to foster an
intellectual climate within which the myth of racialism began to flourisll (Wilford).
This sectio~iof tlie illlit seeks to constn~ctthe fascist world-view by focussing upon the above
el~utneratedcore ideas.
Fascist11 drew ideational sustenance t?om such varied sources as Plato, Rousscau, I-Iegel and
George Sorel to erect the structures 01' irrationalism. For Mussolini, Hitler etc. stirring the
people for action with no provable value or goal sanctity was enough. "Feel, don't think" was
their consistent cotnmand to their followers, For igniting passions and feelings, they resorted
to their rhetorical talents rather Ihan relying on solnc consistent and colicrent ideology of a
written text.
Il-~discriniinate use of myths was also e111ployedby the proponents of fascism. In particular,
the myth of volk was most assiduoilsly articillated by fascism. Althougl~,literally signifying
"the peoplp", volk also accompanied sonie abstmct connotations such as: 'a systenl of absolute
values, aq i~nn~ittnble ~netaphysicalideal of p e o p l c - l i o o d ~i (lford).
~ George Mosse, thus,
explained volk: "Just as individual lnen I~ada soul, so there existed a volk soul which like
man's soiil, give the volk into i~niqueand i~nclianging"character" This made the G e r ~ n a ~in~ s ,
particiilar~to translbnn their collective soul as 'wild and dyna~nic,based on elnotions rather
than on altortured in~ellectualising'.Irrationalism was fi~rtherdeveloped under tlie German
philosopl~licaltradition. Ficlite, Schopenhai~erand Nietzsche collectively sougl~tto repudiate
the idealisit tradition and espoi~sedirrationalism These sources were frequently itsed and abused
by the faqcists Ibr empliasising irrationali~yand stirring LIPsocial passions so tliat fascism
could dwell there and mal;c deeper i l l roads in the society.
Racialism
Strange t h o ~ ~ githniay be, Hitler based his social tlleo~yon the works of a French scholar Arthur
de Gobineau, who was sent to Germany by France as a diplomat. His influence wit11
the Gerlnan led him to develop his theory of racial superiority which ultitnately had a great
impact on German history.
Placir~gAryans as the original &perior race in the world responsible for the rise of great
civilizations, Gobineau found the Alyans intermarrying with the inferior races, thereby causing
both the decline of their civilization as well as their social purity. Against this backdrop,
Gobineau referred to the Germans as the purest because race they were the Ieast mixed racially.
The future of mankind, therefore, depended on the social purity of the Germans.
Gobineau's theory had profound influence among the Germans. Richard Wagner in particular
popularized and dramatized the myth of the Germans' racial superiority, Later on, another
Germanised English man, Houste~~ Stewart Chamberlain, sought to achieve what Wagner had
achieved. Through his musical notes Chamberlain combined teutonic mythology, German
philosophical irrationalism and Gobineau's social superority theories. Cliamberlain stressed
the need for a strong leader to protect and maintain the Gerlnan social purity by showing to
them the way through which this could be done.
Hitler capitalised on these inheritances and condelnned the Jews. He applauded the Germans
for their racial superiority and particularly, pinpointed the Jews for their villainy in the given
scheme of things and peoples. His hatred for the Jews gets amply illustrated in the following
passage:
The Jew...................is a maggot in a rotting corpse ; he is a plague worse than the Black
LC
Death of former times; a germ carrier of the worst sort, mankind's eternql germ the spider that
slowly sucks peoples' blood out of its pores ..............the typical parasit0 ; a sponger who like
a harmful bacillus, c a ~ ~ t i i ~to
u espread;
s the eternal blood sucker.......,...(he peoples' vampire"
(Quoted by Leon P. Baradat).
Hitler categories the peoples of the world into three racial categories:
-
Statism Drives towards a Corpotate State
The notion of Volkish spirit guided thtl course of state formation under fascism. Volk was
traced to medieval Germany, which wds portrayed as a close-knit rural dociety where Volk
was conckived of as "the organic wholeness of the national community - al comrn~uii1;ywhere
the German spirit reigned supreme and subordinatetl all individual interest and priorities".
Besides tlie ~iiytlio f volk, the writings of Hegel provided fi~rtlierimpetus to fascist statism.
According to Hegel, tlie organist state was tlie ultimate idea which manifested as 'the power
of reason act~lalisi~ig itself as will". TIILIS,state was vis~~aEsedby liegel as an integrated
c o ~ n ~ n u n iwherein
ty individually and collectively the particular and the universal, coexisted
7
on tlie basis of reason. Thus portrayed, the state was conceived of as realising spirit or reason
in history. State's nienibersliip enabled men to liiove beyond their private interest and ernbrace
tlie colnrnon good.
Moving fi~rtlierfrom the l-iegelian premises and niutilating tlie mutual dependence of state
and civil society, Mussolini proclaimed 'Everything for tlie state and nothing outside the
state.' Thus, the Hcgelian prescription ofthe state as an end in itself was interpreted by Mussolini
for filrtliering tlie Sascist cause. Hitler did not even require a distortion of'Hegel's ideas for
legitiniising liis stnte. To him, the stnte was a means for f~~rtliering German racial superiority.
Tlie fascist statism drew heavily froni totalitarianism, a tcnii used by M~lssoliniIiiniself. He
raised tlie stature of tlie state as the "Will of Wills", tlie "Good of Goods" and the "Soul of
Souls". As such, the state can ~iialteany demand, give any order, reqi1ii.e any sacrifice and tlie
people must obey and coniply with. State, argued Mussolini, happcns to be tlie " Creator of
Rights" and tlie ' G o o d of Goods". As suc11, it cannot tolerate any resistance from any quarter,
It is, therefore, natural tliat each individual has to perforni the maxinlurn service to tlie state,
no niore and no less.
Hitler, even while according a somewliat secoridary status to the state, ~naxirnisedthe totalitarian
etlios under liis regime. I-le s~~ccessf~illy
converted every possible ~ i i e d i ~as
~ nai political tool
and de/cisively ensured that it catered to tlie priorities set forth by his regime.
The fascist conception of stnte authority laid 1:he .foundation of a corporate state structure,
This ~ l n dother sucli trends will be talten i ~ pi n tlie next sectio~idealing with tlie operational
'dytia~~pics of fascism.
Fascism drew legitinlacy from tlie notion ol'elitisrn as well. E3ot.h I-litler and Mussolini argued
that people are essentially ilncven in their mcnlal makc-up. pllysical strength and spiritual
endowments. As such, tliey cannot contribute evenly to civic and state affairs. Since their
co~ltributionis uneven, they cannot expect equal rewards for their dissi~niliarcontributions to
the society and the state. .
25.3.2 The Operational Dynamics
In operational terms, Fascis~nof Italy and Nazism of Germariy is regarded as "totalitarianih
organiseci itself on behalf of many vestecl interests and agai:nst
of the riglit" b e c a ~ ~ fascis~n
se
the left-wing parties and trade unions. However, in many of their ideological and politjcal
~iia~iifestation like a single party political ideology and mobilizstion, fascisrii does resen~ble
tlie communist: totalitnria~iregimes. Centralization and concentration of political power are
other trends, which show fascism analogous to tlie communist regimes (Roy C. Macridisj.
I lie top government's organs centralized political power in both Italy and Germany.
Accordingly, all sorts of provincial administrative mechanisms were syste~naticallydismantled
under tlie fascist regitnes of Italy and Germany. Tlius, fascism neither provided for federalism
of any variety nor was there any type of separation of power. The-legislative organs were
there to only endorse and ratify governmental enactments. The Italian parliament had the
unique distinction in history to unanimously vote for its own abolition. Thus, all power safely
rested in the hands of either the Fuehrer (Germany) or Duce (Italy). The entire electoral
process was decisively controlled and steered by the single party rule. No wonder, the party
cadres overwliel~~~ingly elected the party sponsored candidates who often got over 99% of tlie
votes cast during the elections. 'Tl~ecentralized government conclusively frustrated all local
press, political activities and opponents, etc and rendered tlle~nutterly deficient. Even all
potential rising was efticiently nipped in the bud by the fascists.
Single Party ..
The fascist party in ltaly and NASDP in Germany had highly cenlralized leaderships. These
parties organized consent through intensive mobilization. The hierarcliical levels of these
parties were fir~nlycocitrolled by tlie Duce and tlie Fuehrer respectively. Aqnual party
congresses were festive gatherings for applauding the leader and confirmini'his policy
guidelines.
Despite the co-existence of the government and the party, the real center of power was always
the party. The party steered the state and tlie state, in turn, invariably catered to the party
priorities virtually as a subordinate organization.
Absolute Leadership
It was tlie envisaged role of the leader to amalgunate the people, the party and tlie state into
one viable entity. Tlie leader owed his authority tliroi~ghthe built up charisma and personal
traits. Nazi Gennany invented such slogans as "Leader is tlie party; the parly is tlie leader"
and "The leader...knows tlie goals and the direction."Tlie position oftlie leader was so invincible
that Germany came to be known as the "Fuehrer-State", "the Leader-State". 'This was the
higllest ]nark of political absolutism.
The Duce in Italy claimed the satlie clualilies. I-le represented both the state and the party and
etilbodied thc interests, goals and a~iibitionsofthe nation and the people. He "tiever sleeps".
"With closed eyes, lie reads our innertilost tliouglits. I-le knows everything; he is the pride and
honor of the nations."
This discussion on tlie operational dynanlics of fascism can be concludecl by highlighting one
or two additional operational trends. First, tlie fiscists in Italy and Ger~nanydid not "make" a
revolution as the communists did. They were on tlie contrary, I'acilitated to power by tile
traditional ruling elite, na~iielythe King i n ltaly and the President of the republic oSGermany.
Consequently. they took over tlie state I-atlier 'legally'. Accordingly,the fascists did not smash
the state into pieces, but retained many of its fornlal instit~~tions,'Thus',Mussolini did not
temper with the kingship and the army. At least till tlie outbreak of World War-11, he retained
their traditional cl~aracter.'The industrial atid business communities too continued to exercise
a considerable functional li.eedom in Germany. Second, fascism appealed ovcrwliel~ninglyto
h . countries assiduously catered to the establishmer~tOF youth organizations.
the ~ 0 ~ 1 t Botli
Mass-scale induction and recruitment to the fascist parlies were made from the trained youth.
Mobilization and organization ol'consent was tli~tsengineered and worked out.
25.4 FASCISM AND CHALLENGES TO CONTEMPORARY LIFE
As pointed out in the very beginning of this unit, fascism did not 'die' with Mussolini and
Hitler. Infact, the success of fascism is perceivable in the neo-fascist formations in Britain
itself, tlie motlier of liberal democracy. British National Party under the leadership of Jolin
Tyndall, is re-legititnising the fascist agenda for Britain and E ~ ~ r o at
p elarge. The recession in
Europe during tlie 1980's and 90's lias atleast latenily, provided a fertile ground to neo-fascism.
Tlie remedial measurcs advocated by s ~ ~ cgroups li reek of old fascist prescriptions: autarky,
corporation elitism, racialism, primacy ol'thc state and subordination oFtlie individuals to the
state. More clangerously, this neo-fascism legiti~natesthe tracl itio~ialfascist views on women,
"forcefully assigning the homefront" to her: "The ~nissionofwo~nenis to be beailtifill and to
bring children into the world.... tlie fcliialc prettifies herself for her mate and hatches tlie eggs
for hi111." (Joseph Goebble's view, quoted by Wilford, p. 205). Tliis and siniilar other views
frustrate the newer feniale idcntity being internalised by wornen in both western and non-
western societies.
Fascism proliiises to raise its head whenever democracy, either by accident or design,
mismatches developnient, thereby fr~~strating tlie cause ol' stability and contentment anlong
tlie people. Tlie binary oppositiolis of "us" and "they" resurface and breed intolerance and
contempt within a society. The "LIS" and "tlicy" resentment among tlie ex-colonizers and tlie
ex-colonies still Iiaunts the world. The "developed" - "developing" dualis~n~LII-tlier accentuates
the dualistic indignities of world comm~~nities. Racial dislianiiony lias been compou~idedby
religioirs f~~ndamentalis~n, which devastatingly aided by terrorism, breccts on unprecedented
fascist temper in the world today. Non-appreciation oftlie pluralist categories of life seems to
rob tlie very life of its intrinsic beauty and harmony. I1'tliese trends are allowed to breed
ful-ther and escalate unabatingly, a new genre of fascism shall collie to stay in tlie world and
distort all that lias so Far witlistood tlie test of time.
The foundational tliouglit of Nietzsclie fascism, originating froni the writings of Sorel,
Scliopeliaucr and I-Iegel, was oi'teli foi~ndto be a discomforting puzzle. Select pieces of their
writings were picked ~ l pto provide a respectf~~l autlienlicity and expedie~itsolutions required
by fascism from time to time. For example, Mussol ini, having 110tinie hi~nselfassigned the
task of building up a tlieory of'state to Giovalini Gentilc who belonged to the Italian School of
Hegelian Philosophy. Gentilc had at hand tlie I-Icgelian theory of tlic state and not having
tnucli time lie used it. Mussolini "took wlislt Gentile offered hirn ..." (Sabinc p. 81 8). The result
was adoption of tlie I-Iegclian language to caliiouflage the real intention \ ratlier than signifying
tlie s~~bstance of Megel's thought. Notewortliy is tlie fact that Mussolini, as late as 1920,
regarcled tlie state as a 'curse to mankind'. While in power, he had to glorif) all things that tlie
state was associated with (narrated by Sabine, p.p. 8 1 8- 1 9).
25.6 SUMMARY
This unit on fascisln enabled us to discen1 the meaning of fascisni, the factors whicli led to its
growth and development, the categories that characterized the fascist world view, the historical
developlnent of fascism and its operational dynamics: We learnt that tlie revolt against
rationalism provided to fascisni its desired back drop. We also noticed that racialism, elitism,
corporation (statism), iniperialis~nand niilitarisni forined the various aspects of fascist ideology.
In historical terrns, fascist11 emerged against tlie depressing ethos of the post-first world war
developments, the traditional ruling elite initially facilitated it. Thereafter, it set out its own
independent, course of action where the processes of totalitarianism handsoniely aided it. At
first attracting the socialist and nationalist forces to its fold, fascism catered to political
absolutisln by singling out its actual and potential enemies and coercing them to a subject
status. Once consolidated, it set out on an imperialistic pursuit and joined hands with Nazism
on the strength of its military process, wtlicli ended with tlie Second World War. Tlie operational
context of fascism saw the yise of a single party, centralization atid concentration of power
and mass induction of youth in party affairs.
.
Even after 1945, as you have read in this illlit, fascism has not vanished In fact, neo-fascist
outfits, particultarly in Britain, alarmitigly knock at the doors of society and threaten the
civilized inheritances there as elsewhere. So long 1;he anemic conditions re-surface and
developmental processes get abused, the possibilities offascist uprisings can not be discounted,
Fascism, after all, thrives on the sharp edges of sacio-cultural exclusivism.
25.7 EXERCISES
1) Write an easy on 'the Fascist World-View'.
2) What are the core ideational categories of fascism?
3) What are tlie major historical stages of fascism? How have they affected the course of:
European politics? Describe.
4) Discuss the operational dynamics of fascism.
.-
5) Apply the fascist world-view to India and find out whether India contains the possibility
of a fascist growth.
UNIT 26 FEMINISM
Structure
26.1 Introduction
26.2 Types of Fe~iiinism
26.3 Patriarchy
26.3.1 Views of Kate Millet
26.3.2 Gerda Lerner's Views
26.3.3 Control over Women's Sexuality and Labour Power
26.3.4 Different Form
26.4 The Sex/Gender Distinction
26.4.1 Sex is to Nature as Gender is to Culture
26.4.2 Masculinity, Femininity and Cultural Differences
26.4.3 Sexual Division of Labour and Work place
26.4.4 Ideological Assumptions bel~indSexual Division of Labour
26.5 Developments in the SexIGender Distinction in Feriiinist Theory
26.5.1 Views of Scholars like Alisan Jagger
26.5.2 Radical Feminists
26.5.3 Post-Modernist View
26.5.4 Gender Identity Interface
26.5.5 Naturalness of EIeterosexualily Questioned
26.6 Fetiiinist Critique of the PublicIPrivate Dichotolny
26.6.1 Feminist Criticisni
26.6.2 Lack of Co~isensusAmong Feminists
26.7 S u m ~ i ~ a r y
26.8 Exercises
- -
26.1 INTRODUCTION
The origins of'the tenn feminism are not clear. Tliere are several opinions, bill tlie ge~ierally
accepted version is that it was first used by the Utopian Socialist Charles Fourier in the 19tIi
century, to refer to the qi~estioliof eqilal riglits for women. In.tlie West, women emerged in
the early l9th century as a distinct interest group, partly because by that lilnc it was clear that
tlie ,promise of e q ~ ~ a l i n~acle
ty by tlie bourgeois democratic revolutions of the 17th and 18th
centuries excluded women, and partly because the Industrial Revolution had led to the
increasingly visible presence ol'women in public employment. The Woman Queslion emerged
at about this time, articulaling tlie q~testionsarising fi011-1tlie exclusion of wonien from the
fruits of Enlightcn~iientTlioi~glit.
In otlier parts of tlie world, tlie emergence of this question in the public arena was in the
context of anti-imperialist I1iove1nentsand stnrggles against feudal oppression. Thus, fe~niliist
interventiotls in post-colonial societies had to engage wit11 both tlie old oppression of traditipn
as well as the new oppression of coloni a 1'Ism.
Feminist theory and politics is ~i~arlted by intense internal debates, and it is generally recognized
by now that it would be more accurate to talk about "feminisms" in the plural, rather than one
single ferninism. Nevertheless, what all feminist positions share is a recognition that women
are placed in an inferior position in society and that this Iiierarcliy is based on gender. Further,
although this hierarchy is j~~stified on grounds of natwral differences between men and women,
feminists llold that it is in fact based on socio-cultural and econornic power structures which
have little to do with the biological difference between tlie sexes.
However, this outline does not capture the complexities of' the debates within f e ~ n i n i s ~ ~ ~ ,
altllough it is a useful entry point into feminist theory, as long as these distinctions are nut
ilnderstood to be watertight con~partments.In this chapter we will provide an introduction to
some ofthe key issues in femi~listthoi~ght,tliroi~pli211examination of three specific themes -
a) patriarchy, b) the sex-gender distinction and c) critique of tlie public/private dichotomy -
and different feminist: posit:ions on these issues,
26.3 PATRIARCHY
This term is central to feminist atialysis, and reFe'ersto an overarching system of ~ualedominance.
Apart fYom tlie control of women's sexuality under patriarchy through the strictly policed
institution of rnonogalnoils nwrriage, women's labour power is also controlled by men.
Women's productivity within the houseliold and outside is controlled by men who will
deter~iiinewhether women will work outside tlie liouseliold or ~iot.To maintain this control
over omen 's ~exzitrlitj~ undlabour, they are deprived of access to and ownership of productive
resources, which malces them enti~elydependent on men. Further, their mobility is limited
tlirougli rules and nortiis that confine women within strictly defined spaces.
Patriarchy takes different Forms in different geographical regions and different historical
periods. For instance, as the liistorian Utiia Chakravarty has pointed out, tlie experience of
patriarchy is not tlie saliie alnong tribal wonien a alnong women in highly stratified caste
tt
society. It is not tlic same today as it was in the 19 century, and it is not the sanie in India as
it is in the indi~strialisedcountries of tlie West. The term "patriarchies" is therefore found
usefill by feminist scholars to refer to this fluidity. By i~singthis approach, the linkages of
patriarchal structurcs with otlier institutions are tilade visible - with, for instance, class, caste,
race, nation, and religion. For example, the socialist feminist Zillah Eisenstein uses tlie term
"capitalist patriarchy" to emphasise the ~nut~lally reinforcing dialectical relationship between
capitalist class structul-eand hierarchical sexual structures. Another siich term is "brahminical
patriarchy", which Ulna Chakravarty uses to draw attention to the intersection OF caste and
gender oppression.
One of the key contributions of feminist theory is the making of a distinction between "sex"
and "gender". Sex as rel'erring to the biological differences between rnen and women and
gender as indicating tlie vast range of ct~itz~ral
meanings attached to that basic difference.
This distinction is important for feminism to lnalce because tlie subordi~iatioriof wo~iienhas
Ixen fundanientally justified on the grounds of tlie biological differences between tnen and
women. This kind of biological deter~iiitiismhas bccn one ofthe most important legititnising
~iicclianismsofwolnen's oppression over the centuries. The challenge to biological determinism
is therefore, crucial for feminist politics.
Scholars like Alison Jaggnr argue tl~al"sex" and "gender" arc dialectically and inseparably
related, and that the,conceptuaI distinction that the earlier fcminists established between the
two is not sustainable beyond a point. In this wnderstanding, hun~anbiology is constitiited by
a co~nplexinteraction between the human body, thc physical environment and the state of
development of technology and society. 'I~ILIS, as Jaggar puts it, "the hand is as 111uc1itlie
product o f l a b o ~as
~ rthe tool of labour." What is meant here is tliat two processes are involved:
human intervention changes the extcrnitl environnicnt and simultancously, changes in the
external environment shape and change tlie IILIIII~II body. This is trite in two senses. One, in a
long-term evolutionary sense, ovcr the nii Ilenia. That is, human bodies have evolved differently
in different parts of the globe, due to diSScre~icesin clict, climate and the nature of work
performed.
Two, in a nzore short-term sense, in one lil'ctilnc that is, it is now recognised that
neuropl~ysiologyand I~ormonalbalances arc afkctcd by social factors like anxiety, physical
labour, and the level and kind of socia1 interaction, just as rnt~chas social interaction is affected
by people'ls neuropl~ysiologyand honi~or~al bnl,a!~ces. For instance, certain chemical changes
in the body nlay prodiice certain syri'lptonlsof'stress tl~atcan bc treated by drugs. But equally,
high stress levels can, in fact, be tho I.carsoli i'or liigl~crchemical in~balances,and it niny be
possible to restore the body's balance only by changing the conditions in which it lives,
When we apply this understanding, that bialogy and cultiuc are interrelated, to the sex/gender
distinction, the ,relevant inzplication is tliat women's bodies have been shaped bv social
restrictions and by nor~nsof beauty. That is, tlie "body" has been formed as much by "culture"
as by 'hatuse". For instance, the rapid improvements in women's athletic records over the
past two decades is an indication that social nornzs had shaped biology and restricted women's
physical development. ~ e n ~ i i iantl~ropologists
st have also pointed out that in some ethnic
groilps there is liltle physical differentiation between n2en and women. Xn short, we must
consider that there are two equally powerful factors at work - one, there is a range of interrelated
ways in which society produces sex dirferences and two, sex differences structure society in
particular ways.
26.5.2. Radical Feminists
A second kind of rethinking of sedgender has come from radical feminism which argues that
feminists must not underplay the biological difference between the sexes and attribute all
difference to "culture" alone. To do so is to accept the male civilization's devaluing of the
female reproductive role. This is a criticism of the liberal feminist understanding that in an
ideal world, lnen and women would be more or less alike. Radical feminists claim that on the
contrary, patriarchal social values have denigrated "feminine" qualities and that it is the task
of feminism to rccover these qualities, atid this difference between men and women, as valuable.
The radical feminist position on the sexfgender distinction is that there are certain differences
between men and women that arise froin their different bioiogical reproductive roles, and that
therefore, women are more sensitive, instinctive and closer to nature. Radical feminists such
as Susan Griffill and Andrea Dworkin, for example, believe that women's reproductive biology,
the process of gestation and the experience of mothering, fundamentally affects their
relationship to the external world. Women are, therefore, in this understanding, closer to nature
and share in the nature's qualities of fecundity, nurturing and instinct. These qualities have
been rejected by patriarchal society but feminists should accept and revalue these qualities.
Ecofeminists like Vandana Shiva draw upon this understanding, arguing that the feminine
world-view is morc respectful of nature, and that women are better attuned towards ecologically
sustainable development practices.
Carol Gilligan's book, In a Different Pbice is a significant example of this viewpoint. Using a
psychoanalytical point of view, she argues that because the primary care-giver in childllood
- given the skxual division of labour - is invariably a woman (the mother), the process by which
men and women come to adulthood is different. Boys come into adulthood learning to
differentiate from the mother, while girls do so by identifying with the mother. That is, in a
sex-differentiated society, while all infants identify with the mother, gradually boys learn that
they are "different" while girls learn that they are the "same" as their mother. This results,
Gilligan argues, in women having a more subjective, relational way of engaging with the
world, while men have a more objective mode. Women relate to others, while men learn to
separate themselves. This explains, for example, the difference in the nature of male and
female friendships.
Gilligan's focus in this work is the difference in the ways Inen and wornen take moral decisions,
and she comes to the conclusion that women are less influenced by nonnative notions of what
is right and wrong, and more by other factors like empathy, concern and sensitivity to another's
predicament. Men, on the other hand, tend to take moral decisions based on well-accepted
notions of what society thinks is right and wrong. Thus, Gilligan concludes that the basic
categories of western inoral philosophy - rationality, autonomy and justice - are drawn from
and reflect the male experience of the world. The fetnate experience is invisible here. To deny
difference is, therefore, to agree with the patriarchal negation of femininity as worthless.
hl this context, it is interesting to note that some scholars are of the opinion that the strictly
bipolar model of masculinityffemininity and the devaluing of the feminine are characteristic
of only the modern western civilization. Pre-modern Indian cultures had greater space for a
variety of sexual identities - eunucl-rs, for example, had a socially acknowledged status in
Indian society that they have lost in contemporary times. Again, the Sufi and Bhakti traditions
drew upon notions of androgyny and often rejected the two-sex model. Take, for instance,
this poem by a 12th century Sliaivite poet, Basavanna, who wrote in Kannada:
Loolc here, dear fellow,
1 wear tliese men's clotlies only for yGlj.
Sometimes I am man,
Solneti~nes1 am woman..
Another Sliivabliakta, Devara Dasimayya, writing two centuries earlier, wrote:
If they see breasts and long hair coming,
'Tiley call it woman,
If beard and wllislcers
They call it man.
But loolc, tlie sell' tliat hovers in between
Is neither man nor wonian...?
A tliouglit provolcing argu~ncnlis madc by Ashis Nandy, that precolonial Indian cultures
accorclcd greater val~leto lkmininiiy. 11 c\l:ls with tlie coniing oi'colonialism that the western
valorization of' masciilinity became tlic norm. Nntiotialists too, then played into this
~tnderstanding,and tried to resist the deriding of Indian culture as "cfTerninate7' by claiming to
be as "masculine" as thc colot~ialmasters - thc idcology of revolutionaries for example, was
very masc~tlinist.According to Nandp, Gandhi was ~iniquein attemptingto rocus on "feminine"
rather than "~iiasculine" clualities as I~avillgthe power to resist colonialisln - tliat is, lie
elnpliasizcd spiritual and moral courage over aggression and violence.
A Inore recent fetninist positiori talccs tlic opposite view !'row that ofradical feminists. While
radical feminists nrgiie that the scx/gendcr distinction i~ndcrplayssex differences, a school of
postmodern fe~iiinistiliouglit I~oldstllar, it over-etnphasizes thc biological body. Juditli Butler,
For instance, argues that if "gcndcr" is the cult~.ir:~l mctu~ingstl~atthe sexed body taltes on,
then gender cannot be said to fbllow fkom "scx" in ally one way. What she says is that "gender"
is not tlie cult~lralinscriptinn of meaning on to a pre-given *'sex'" rmthcr, gender as a way OF
thinking and as a conccpt, ~roduccstlie c:licgory or biological sex. In this i~nderstanditig,
"sex" docs not precede "gender" bill "gcndcr" preccdcs "sex," Butler thus suggests a "radical
discontinuity" between sexed bvciics 311dcillti~rally~ o ~ i s t r t ~genders.
ct~d
What is ciiaracteristic ol'tl~;.:pc~sitionis that it ho!cls that t l ~ ccrltcgory of "woman" does not
exist prior to the tl~inliingahouf is. Gcndcr is somctlling thal: is co~~stri~cted through relations
of powel-,and tliroi~gha scries o;'iiorms slid constraints that regulate what will be recogniscd
as a "rnale" body and a 'blkmaic" body. 'l'hrolcgh such nolms, a wide range af bodies are
rendered invisible and/or illcgitiri~atc.For instaaice, infi~n~s born with no clear determining
sexilal characteristics. or et,int~chs,or men nncl worncn who choose not to hllow the dress
nornis prescribed for 1.11eirgender. A11 these are cil.liermarginaiised, criminalised or forccd to
fit into tlic existing two-sex ~nodclit1 some ws~yor the other. Most modern languages have no
way ofspeaking of a hunian who does not tit into cither ses. What this incans is that language
forces "reality" into certain prc-given patterns and prevents certain possibilities from being
realised.
D - -
Alison Jaggar disci~ssesa study in tlie USA of chi Idren whose sex had been incorrectly assigned
at birth due to such ambiguity - when the "real" sex of the cliild emerged at a later stage, both
parents and niedical practitioners gelierally decided on surgery to confirni the sex attributed
at birth. This was invariably preferred to simply accepting that the child's sex was different
from that attributed at birth. In other words, surgical intervention to cliange "sex" was thought
to be easier than eradicating years of c~~ltural "gender" conditioning. Think about it - if you
had a three-year old son whom you took to tlie doctor for some problems, and discovered that
the child was more female than male. Would you prefer to now come to terlns with the fact
tliat YOLI liave a daughter, infor111everybody, change the way you dress and think of your
child, or woi~ldyo11pl-efer surgical intervention to retain your "son" as a son? The fact is that
tlie latter option is what any of us would prefer. What does this tell 11sabout the supposedly
iincliangeablc "natural category of biology and conversely, about the supposedly changeable
J 7
category of "culture"? Does it not seem that culture is Inore concrete sonieti~nesthan biology?
Feminist scientists SLICR as Ruth Bleier and Evelyn Fox Keller have argued that a rigid sex/
I
gender distirictio~irestricts "biological sex" - that is, sex defined as anatomical, horlnonal or
I
cliro~noso~nal - as sometliing to be studicd by the bio-niedical sciences, "gender" being studied
I by the social sciences. Such an understanding, they argue, ~nistakenlyassul~iestllat while
cultural notions of gender may change, the body remains as an unchanging biological reality
that needs no further explanation. These feminist scientists argue that on tlie contrary, our
perceptions and interpretations ofthe body are mediated through language, and the bio-medical
sciences fitnction as a ~iiajorprovider of this language.
Such a feminist position rejects tlie idea tliat scientific facts about the body simply exist to be
discovered. Rather, scientific "facts" are deeply embedded in society and culture. TIius "sex"
is cot~structedby huriian practices.,
:.
t
26.5.4 Gender Identity Interface
A fourth kind of rethinking of the sexfgender distinction colues fro111locating "gender" in a
grid of identities- caste, class, race, religion. This would mean that tlie biological category of
"women" does not necessarily have shared interests, life-situations, or goals. This kind of
understanding lias arisen fiAonltlie political practice ofwolnen's ~novelnentsa1 I over the world,
which has increasingly shown up the fact that "woruen" do not exist as a pre-existing subject
which can silnply be mobilized by the wo~iien'smovement. That is, women identify tliernselves
not o~ily,and not even necessarilyprimarily, in terlns of their gender, but as black, or nils slim,
or dalit, or peasant. So in many cases, women may be easier mobilized in tcrtns of their
religion, for example, than by tlie won~en'smovelnent.
In the casc of India, a good example of this is the debate over tlie Unifor~iiCivil Code. All
religious co~nni~~nities have tlieir own personal laws which discriminate against wonlen on
matters of marriage. divorce, inheritance and guardianship of children. The demand for a
iiniforni civil code which woilld give all wornell equal rights as citizens has therefore been a
demand of the wome~i'smoven-lent since 1937. Howevela, i n tlie growing atmosphere of
com~iiiinalisnisince the 80'5, and the insecurity felt by religio~~sminorities, most sections of
the \vomenYsmoven~enthave gradually shifted to the opinion that the position of women
shoiild be improved by reforms within personal laws, rather than by forcing comn~unitiesto
obey legislation passed by tlie state. The state no longer has the legitimacy it had in the
in~~iiediate post-independence years, its role in communal violence is increasi~iglysuspecl,
and it cannot be seen simply as an agent of progressive social change. Thus what was a simple
feminist deliland that all M1o/nens110~1ld
have equal rights has been considerably transformed
by the politics of rcligiou.~identity.
Further, al t politically activc women do not necessarily act as feminists - they [nay well be
representing interests and structures of power which feminist politics in India has s o ~ ~ gtoht
struggle agai~ist.Tlius, we find wolnen active in Hindu right-wing politics and in anti-lower
caste movements like the agitation against tlie Mandal Coln~nissionreport. In other words, in
tliis understanding, tlie fe~iiinistsexlgender distinction must take into account other modes of
constituting identity. Depending on the context, evcn as feminists, we may have to privilege
caste or class identity over gender in some cases, jilst as we expect ~narxistsor dalit activists
to privilege gender over class and caste in sonie contexts.
Feminist scliolarsliip emerging li.0111 both libcral and Marxist traditiolis have contested this
distinction as being conceptilally flawed and politically opprcssive. From within the liberal
tradition comes tlie nrgument ll~atthe dichotomy assi~~ned between "public" (non-domestic)
7
and "private ' (domestic) Iias enablcd the f a ~ i ~ ito
l y be excluded from the values of "justice"
and "eqi~tllity" which have animated liberal thought silice the seventeenth centiiry-beginnings
of Iiberalis~ii.The "individual" was the adult Inale head oftlie household, and thus his right to
included his rights over those in his control in
be fsec froni interferelice by the state or cl~~lrcli
tlie private realm - women, cl%ldren,servants. Thus, oppression within the family was rendered
invisible to political t1ieol.y.
In addition to sharing this view, socialist-fen~inistscritique the public/private distinction in
Marxist theory produced by the model of political ecolionly based on "production", defined
as econoinic production for the capitalist market. This model, they argue, ignores the "private"
sphere of "reproduction", where women are responsible for reproducing both humans (through
child-bearing) and labour power (through I~ousework.)For traditional niarxists, this work is
seen to be part of the non-economic or superstri~ct~~ral real~~i,
and is not even defined as
"work". Socialist feminists therefore, contcst the public/private distinction by showing that
sexuality, procreation, and housework, understood to be "private", in fact hold up the "public"
sphere of production. Their argun~entis that ho~iseworkis a commodity - it is unpaid labour
that helps to reproduce labour power. This is so in two senses - a) when male labour comes
home, it is the housework done by women tliat ensures that they can go back to work the next
day b) the bearing ofcl~ildrenreproduces actual people who will work in factories etc.
However, this work is not paid for, and this unpaid labour in the "private" sphere underlies
and ensures capitalist production in the "public" sphere.
Thus, feminists across the political spectrum are agreed that the public and the private are not
two distinct and separate splicres and that the assumption that they are, is uniformly detrimental
to women's interests.
However, there is no consensus on the consequences of this understanding for feminist practice.
From one kind of feminist position, cl~aracteristicof US femiiiis~ii,it is possible then to argue
that many claims important to feminists, from reproductive rights to protcction against sexual
harassment, are most effectively grounded on the clai~nsto privacy. Infact, the rhetoric of the
individual's right to privacy has been used in the USA to secure some rights for women
against the patriarchal family. For example, the landmark judgement on abortion in Roe v.
Wade (1972) is based on the belief in the individual woman's right to privacy. So was the
judgement in 1965 that the right of married couples to use contraceptives is part of "a right to
privacy older than the Bill of Rights." Feminists who support privacy as a ground for securing
rights for women, while challenging the traditional publiclprivate dichotomy, ~naltethe
argument that the virtues of privacy have not been available to women since they did not have
the status of individuals in the public splicre. 111this view therefore, the task of felninist
practice is to transform tlie institutions and practices of gender so that a genuinc sphere of
privacy, free of governmental and legal intrusion, can be ensured for both inen and women.
This is not a ~ositiontaken within the Indian women's movement.
More common here is tlie dia~netricallyopposite stand arising from the radical feminist slogan
"the personal is political" which has brought into the public arena issues sucli as domestic
violence against women, child abuse and rape. Feminist pressure for legislation oil these
issues has meant tlie recognition that violence of various kinds against women in tlic "private"
realm o f the family and sexuality is in principle as actionable as violence in the "public"
arena. The logical extension of this line of thinking is that privacy and thc family are areas of
"judicial void" or "judicial weakness" to the extent that they are outside the application of the
law. Thus issues arising from sexuality and family take on legal significance. Although
adherents of this position do hold tliat the state is paternalistic and masculine, they are confident
that if a law is designed by feminists from the standpoint of women, it can be or advantage to
wonien. They denounce the right to privacy, therefore, as a means to protect the existing
structures of power and access to resources in the private sphere. For example, it is argued
that by sanctioning abortion as a right of privacy, the state has ensured that the control women
won out of this legislation has gone to men within the family - husbands and fathers. Further,
when abortion is framed as a right of privacy, the state has no obligation to provide public
funding for abortion.
Thus, the feminist reconceptualisation of the publidprivate dichotomy and the critique of the
family as an oppressive institution opens up several new areas of debate.
26.7 SUMMARY
In this unit, you have learnt the basic meaning of feminism. The origin of the term has been
traced and the three broad strands of feminism - liberal, socialist and radical have been
explained. Feminisln and patriarchy are inextricably linked and thus, the latter has been analysed
in detail. You also now know that 'one of the key contributions of feminist theory is the
making of a distinctio~~ between "sex" and "gender".' The unit also tells us in detail about the
developments in the sexlgender distinction in feminist theory. It should be realised that the
sexlgender distinction is not as simple and straight as it may first appear.
Through this overview, we have seen how feminist theory has developed over a century of
political practice, generating new debates within itself, and offering new challenges to key
concepts of mainstream political theory.
26.8 EXERCISES
1) Trace the origin ofthe term feminism.
2) Enumerate the different types of feminism. What is comlnon to different feminist positions?
3) Explain the meaning ofpatriarchy with reference to the views of some feminist scholars.
6) What do you understand by sexual division of labour? What are the ideological assumptions
behind it?
7) What are the views of scholars like Alisan Jaggar on the sex-gender interface?
is slirunlc in size and is fast emerging as n global village. However, the world is swept by tlic
winds of violence. Illspite of n~odefnityand advancement towards material gain and cconomic tB
gains, peace and happiness have eluded mankind.
1
ti
How can conflict be resolved and order established ifthe authorities protecting interests of'all
are themselves l~risonersof"sel.f-intel-est'?This was tlie dilemma faced by Maliatma Gandhi.
l-ie introduced ethics in politics and made self-realization [lie purpose of life disapproving of
the pursuit of 'self-interest' for worldly riches and pleasures. Tlie Gandhian message orTr~lth
and Non-violence seems to be tlic only hope and liglit in tliese dark days. The 'soul-force'
wlie~iawalcened is capable of burning all impurities, whetliel- political, economic or social.
Pacifism is the o111ysolution f i r tlie s~lrvivalof Iiu~nanity.
27.2 GANDHBSM
I,
Maliatma Gaudhi is a religioiis Iiumanist. For tlie attain~iientof Swaraj, he has worltetl out
cel-tain principles that are woven into political pliilosopliy by others. Thesc principles of Gandhi
i
are known as Gandliism. Gandhi had neither tlie tinle nor tlie paiience to Sor~nulateany 'tlieory'
wit11 the result what we have today is a collection of speeches, articles and other writings,
which are not 'tlieory', but, at best, the background fora sound theory. Here are three different
paragraphs from Gandlii"~writings wliich give 11san insight into Iiis thouglit:
I C I IIIO/ I c ~ c /O
~ ~ CI vi.~io11~1:1:. C C I ~ The reli<gionqf'non-viofence i . nof
I ~OIC~~ ~I ' N C ~ ~ide~li.sf. ~ uicunt
ll?e i.isl7i.r LIMCL'S~I~YIIS.11 is 117er1nl,fi)r
n?e~.e(l:Jol. m ~ ~ c Non-violence
J I ~ Cco111!~;,;:/~)eo~~le ll. is lhc
i
ICIM~~ / ' O L I I~1~ecie.s
" C I S violence is the INM, c!f'l/-rebi-zlte.The spirit lies dortnanf in the brute und
i7e knuua no lalv hi//thtr/ of~hy.eiccr1mighl. The dignity cjf'tnan requires obedience to a higher
~LIW-lo
117e.slrengf/r(?/'1/7e.spi/*it.
Hnmnnity is passing tlirai!gh n philse of'cr(sls.,Cindlii h;ls dcnicd using ally 'ism'. but his
pri~iciplcshiive the soluiions of'world being 1':lced by humn~+iity.Gandhi libs ari
alter~iativeto tlic L ~ ~11L11sI well ilS tlic icleology. 'l'he dc\lrlopment of tlie ideas of
=
Gandhi al'ter hi111and their .\
application bcco~iieimportant as h solution orientccl ~ncclianismto
save humanity. 'l'here is an enoniious tnsli before LIS.
- - - -
27.3 PACIFISM
'I'he clictionary rncnning or'tlre term 'pacifism' mcnns a beliefthat all war. is nora ally wrong
and that dispittcs sliou Id bc settlcd by ~)e:icclitlmeans. 'She ctliical pri~iciplcsoi'GandIii itdliere
to this concept. Politics, in lie Iinnds of'greedy and po\ver-l~u~?gry people, has bcco~iiean
instru~iientol'crinie, con~~ption a~idterrorization. Criminalisntio~iof politics has milde a slin~ii
oTdcmoclncy. The \vorld is quite disillusioriecl by the worlting ofthe strilctitrcs of violence,
both capitalism and conimunisni. 1li11iia1-1 society I I I L I Saholish
~ war if it is to survive. We are
in a ncw era. The old mctliods and sululions are 110 longer cnoi~gli.W c tlii~sthave new thoughts,
new ideas, and new COIICCPLS. We should now proclaim our readiness to abolislz war, The
reb~~lt woiild be magical. 'Tht: only altcrnative is pcnce-power or non-violent resistance.
Among those who thinlc o f themselves as believers i n non-violence, there are diverse points
of view. Some use non-violence only as a technique which tnight be discarded under other
circumstances; some Iiold to non-violence as a matter of principle, and for some it is a11
essential part of their religious faith.
i) Passive rcsistance: Passive resistance is lilcely to be defensive in both its tactics and its
strategy, and to involve fornis of non-co-operation that embarrass rather than coerce. It
means directly altering one's own beliaviour, but not directly itiipeding that ofthe opponent.
If non-resistance "goes along with" tlie opponent, absorbing tlie latter's aggression and
offering no co~interaction,passive resistance is a way tliat refuses to g o along witli the
opponent, b ~ l chooses
t roules of action which tactically disengage the resister fro111 the
direct point of conflict. It may oveldy a c q ~ ~ i e sto
c cthe opponent's terms, but its strategic
effect is to s o change tlie terms ofconflict that tlie opponent, for his own reasons and not
beca~rseof any overt i~npediment,is led to initiate change. 'The boycott o r withdrawal of
patronage, tlie walkout aspect of a strike-these are types of passive resistance. 111these
actions, the resister si~iiplyremoves himself from eiigagernent with his opponent at the
point where the opponent relies LIPOII the resister's reciprocal action to co~npletehis own
action. A factory cannot produce goods witlioi~ttlie action of its workers. If tliey cease
their productive action, tlie managenient of tlie factory is deprived of an indispensable
clenient in i11e process 01' prodi~ctioti. If bus riders passively refi~seto ride buses, tlie
buses will go e~ilptyand tlie bus co~iipany'srevenues will be ci~rtailedin proporlio~~ to the
efl'ccti\~enessoi'tlie boycott. The next step is LIPto the factory or the bus company, which
must eitlicr. come LO tcrnis with the resisters or replace them or- force them to come back.
U i ~ itt I I ~ L I do
S ~ sornetliing to regain control of tlie situation.
Gandlii says that non-violence is not merely a pcrsonal virtue. It is also a social virtue to be
cultivated lilie tlic otliel. virtues. Surely, society is largely regulated by the expl-ession ol'nbn-
violence in its mutual dealing\. What I ask Sol- is an extension of' it 011 a larger, national and
inlernational scale. All society is held together by non-\riolencc, even as the earth is held in
her position by grnvitalion. Bill wlicn tl'tc law ol'gravitation was discovcred, tlie discovery
yielded results ol'wliicl~o i ~ a~iccstoss
r had no knowledge. Even so, when society is deliberntely
c o n s ~ r ~ ~inc taccorciancc
~d with tlic law of'non-violence, its structure will be diffkerent in material
parliculars li-om \vh:tt i t is today. But 1 cannot say in advance what the govern~nentbased on
nun-violence will bc lilie.
I
What is happening tocSay is disregard oftlie Ia\v ot'nori-violcnce and enthronement ofviolence
as if' it were an eternal law. A society based on non-violence can only consist ofgroups settled
in villages in which vo1~1nt;lry
C O - C ) P C ~ ~ I ~ is I I condition of dignilied and peaculirl existe~~cc.
~ Othe
In the ubsclice uSan idci~lRlrnr~.c!jj)n,\vhicli Gandhi sets out to achieve, lic encourages us to
realize 1 Iiat l.he seco~rdbesl lbr~iiofgovelnnient would be s i ~ c lthat
~ , is basecl on the priliciples
ol'~ion-violence.
Active Force
The no~i-violenceof'GandIii's conception is a Inore active and Inore of a real fighting against
wicked~iesst1ia11retaliation wliose very nature is to increasc wickedness. He contemplates a
mental and. tlierefore. a ~iioralopposition to immoralities. He seeks entirely to blunt the edge
of tlie tyrant's sword, not by putting LIPagainst it asliarper-cclged weapoti, but by disappointing
liis expectation that he would be facing physical resistance. It would at first dazzle him, and at
last compel recognitio~ifi'oni Iiim, ~vliiclirecognition woi~ldnot humiliate Iiinl but would
uplift Iiim, It nlay be urged tliat this again is all ideal state. A~idso it is.
Gandlii says that lie admits tliat tlie strong will rob tlie weak atid tliat it is a sin Lo be weak. But
this is said of tlie sol11in man, not of the body. If'il were saicl ofllie body, we coi~ldnever be
free from the sin of weakness. But ttie strength of tlie soul can defy a whole world in arms
against it. 'rliis strength is open to the weakest in body.
Non-violence is tile greatest force at tlie disposal of manl<ind. It is miglitier than the mightiest
weapon of' destri~ctiondevised by tlie ingenuity of man. Destri~ctionis not the law of tlie
humans. Man lives freely by his readiness to die, if need be, at the hands of liis brother, never
by IciIIing him. Every niurcicr orotlier i~iji~ry,
110matter lor what causes, co~nniittedor inflicted
on another is a csimc against Iiunianity.
Matchless Bravery
An armed soldier I-dieson his weapons l'ol. liis stl-engtli.'rake away fsom Iiini his I W C ~ ~ O I I S -
Iiis gun or his sword, and he generally beconies lielpless. But a person who lias t r ~ ~realized
ly
the principle of lion-violence has tlie God-given strength for his weapon and the world lias not
Icnown nnyl.liing thal can match it. A s111alIbody ofdetermined spirits fired by an u~~~queticliable
fai tli in theil- ~iiissioncan alter tlie course or history. Non-violence of tlie strong is any dpy
stronger tlia~itliat of tlie bsavcst soldier fi~llyaniied.
Exercise in Faith
Thc I~;~rc!cslmetal yields to suficicnt heat. So, cven the liardest heart 11ii1st~iiebtbel'ore \lie
lieat of non-violence. Antl there is no lirnit to the capacity of'non-violence to generatc lidat.
Evelay action is a resultant of a multitude of forces, even of a contrary nature, There is no
\vnslc ofencrgy. So we Icarn in tile books on mechanics. 'This is equally true ofhilman actions.
TIie tlifi'erence is that in one case, we gonerally know the forces at work, and when we do, we
can mathematically fore.tell the resulta~it.In the case of Iiuman actions, they (.esi~ltfro111a
concu~.~-ence ofl'orccs. most of wliich we have 110lknowledgc of. Rut our ignora~ice111ustnot
bc nincle to scrye tile cause ol'disbeliel'in the power of these fbrccs. And ~ ~ o ~ ~ - v i ' o lbeing
ence
tlic mightiest d ~ r c rin rhc world and also the inust elusive in ils working. it de~nalidsthe
greatest exercise offaith. Even as we believe in God out of faith, so we have to believe in non-
violence as a matter of faith.
Violence like water, when it has an outlet, rushes forward furiously witli an overwhelming
force. Non-violence cannot act madly. It is the essence of discipl ine. But, when it is set going,
no amount of violence can crush it. For its f ~ ~play,
l l it requil-es ullsullied purity and an
unquenchable faith.
A Science
Ahinzsa is a science. The word 'failure' has 110place in the vocabulary of science. Failure to
obtain the expected result is often the precursor to fu~therdiscoveries. If the function of himsn
is to devour all it comes across, the f~unclionof nhimsn is to rush into the lnoulli of hBzsa. In
an atmosphere of ahimsa, one has no scope to put his ahinzsa to the test. It can be tested only
in the face of himsu.
Violence car1 only be eiTectively net by non-violence. This is an old, established truth that the
weapon of violence, even if it was the atom bomb, became useless when matched against
non-violence. That very few undel-stand how to wield this mighty weapon is true. It requires
a lot of understanding and strength oT mind. It is unlike what is needed in military schools and
colleges. The difficulty one experiences in meeting hill?snwith rrliin~scrarises from the wealc~~ess
of mind.
'Hate the sin and not the sinner' is a precept which, thortgh easy enough to understand, is
rarely practiced, and that is why the poison of hatred spreads in the world. This ahimsu is the
basis of the search for truth. I am realizing every day that thc search is vain, unless it is
founded on uhirnsa as the basis. It is quite proper to resist and attack a system, but to resist and
attack its author is tantamount to resisting and attacking oneself. For we are all tarred with the
same bri~sh,and are children of one and the satme creator, and as such, the divine powers
within LIS are inlinite. To sligl~ta single human being is to slight those divinc powers, ancl thus
to harm not only that being, but with him the whole world.
Man and his deed are two distinct things. Whereas a good deed should call forth approbation
and a wicked deed disapprobation, the doer of the deed, whetl~ergood or wicked, always
deserves respect or pity as the case may be.
Those who seek to destsoy Inen rather than manners adopt the latter, and become worse than
those whom they destroy in the mistaken beliefthat manners will die with the men. They do
not Itnow the root of the evil.
It is the acid test of non-violence that in a non-violent conflict, there is no rancour left behind,
and in the end the enemies are converted into friends. That was my experience in So~lth
Africa, witli General Smuts. He started with being my bitterest opponent and critic. Today, he'
is my wannest friend.
1
The principaliin~pJicationof rrhimsa is that the ahin~sain LIS0~1gl1tto soften and not to stiffen
our opponent's athtude to us; it ought to melt him; it ought to strike a responsive chord in his
heart.
As ahinua-ites, can you say that you practice genuine crhinwu? Can you say that yo11 receive
the arrows of the opponent ori your bare breasts without returning them? Cali you say that you
are not angry, that you are not perturbed by his criticism?
By reason of a life-long practice of uhirnsu, Gandhi clai~nsto be an expert in it, though very
imperfect. Speaking i n absolute terms, he says, "the more I practice it, the clearer I see how far I
am from the full expressiol1 ofahimsrr in my life." Apart fiom the pl~ilosophicaljustification for
ahimsa in terrns of the relativityoftruth, there is also an ethical and moral basis for it, which Gwdhi
puts in terms ofends-means relationsliip. In his words, h i t s ofa tree will depend on what type of
seed has been sown.
Non-violent action is a techniqueof conducting protest, resistance, and interventions without pllysical
violence by: (a) acts of omissions-that is the participants' refi~salto pesfortn acts which they usually
perform, are expected by custom to pzrfosni, or are req~~ired by law and regulation to perform; or
(b) acts ofcon~mission-thatis, the participants perform acts which they ~lsuallydo not perfonn, are
not expected by CUS~OIII to perform; or (c) a combination of both.
The techniclue includes a ~ni~ltitudeofspecific nietl1ods which are grouped into three main classes:
non-violent protest and persuasioli (symbolic actions com~nunicatingopinions, such as parades and
leafleting); non-cooperation (withholding ofsocial, economic or political cooperation, as by social
boycotts, economic boycotts, labour strikes, or political non-cooperation and disobedience); and
non-violent intervention (physical, psychological,social, econoniic and political actions that disrupt
the operation ofthe system being opposed).
Althoilgh Gandhi is not tlie originator of non-violent struggle, lie is a major historical player in its
refinement and development. Gandlli also recognizesthe inlportance of strategy-skillful~~ess in tlie
choice and use of means and methods to increase the possibilitiesof success in non-violent struggle.
He has contributed significantly to the refinement of strategy and the practice ufcarefi~lstrategic
planning for this type of conflict. tle lias brought grea~lyincreased strategic sophistication to the
technique.
He charted ways in which people-both intellectuals and tile masses-who did not share his full
beliefs could join in non-violent struggles and could become enlpowered. He challenged the
most powerfill and vast en~pirethe world had ever seen and won.
e .rustice and freedom require empowering oppressed people and redistributing power in
society.
e Peace is not achieved by stifling conflicts in \vhich iliiportant iss~lesare at stake, but
by using non-violet~tstruggle to tight those conflicts to the point of resolution.
Mass non-violent struggle in politics is possible as a substitute for both passivity and
violence.
e Masses of people who will never accept non-violence as a moral principal will at
tilnes practice pragmatic non-violent struggle.
Pacifism, non-violence, non-injury, or aliirnsa- as Gandhi tenns it- are all words indicating
what we nus st avoid in our social and political relationships, if we are to build a global
co~nniunity.The avoidance of the infliction of i~iji~ry, however, is not merely a negative
achievement in spite of the negative prelix, The way of pacifism is a new way of being which
iniparts a new strength to those who enter it. Pacifism offers a new way of dealing with fear,
anxiety, and danger.
27.6 EXERCISES
I) For whom is the religio~iof non-violence nieant?
28.1 INTRODUCTION
The major concern ofthis unit is to introduce, understand and compare the communitarian and civic
republican perspectives in political theory. These perspectives have gained considerable importance
and acceptance in conteniporasypolitical theo~y.Such importance and acceptance may be explained
on two grounds: firstly, both these perspectives contain diflerent forceful and somewhat valid
critiques ofthe political tradition of liberal itldividualistn- alradition that has occupied a dominant
position in modem political thinking and political practice; and secondly, through their critiques,
these perspectives develop meaningful and seemingly relevant alternative conceptualizations of
such political ideas as fieedon~,justice and the relationship between the citizen and the state.
Since con~munita~~ianism and civic republicanism are essentially critiques o c and present themselves
as alternativesto, liberal individualism, it would be llelpful to begin with an interpretive summary of
the liberal individualist perspective in political theory. It may be mentioned that an elaborate and
thorough treatment oftl~isperspective is given in other units ofthis course. In this unit, our attempt
would be limited to an understandingof so~lieof its main arguments, which would in turn facilitate
our understanding of co~iimu~iitaria~~is~n as well as civic republicanism.
Liberal individualisni is essentially one of tlie nlaliytheories oi'tlie nature ofself, tlie relationship
between the citizen and the state and the propcr scope ofstate activities. Some of its main advocates
include Thomas Hobbes, John Locke, Adam Smith, Jeremy Benfhani, J.S.Mil1, David Ricardo,
I-Ierbert Spencer and inore recently, John Rawls, EA. Wayek and Robert Nozick. Tliese political
thinkers have offered ideas and arguments, which though different and sometimes conflicting,
combine to constitute what is labeled as tlie liberal individualist perspective.
Since people are fiee, rational and capable of seif-determination, their interests are better promoted
by letting them choose for themselves what sort of life they want to lead. Individual interests are
harmed by any attempt on the part ofthe state to enforce a particular view ofthe good life. The
primary value in a liberal political order, in other words, is the neutrality ofthe state. A neutral state
may be defined as a state, which does not favour, protect, promote or contrarily discriminate against
or penalize any particular individual conception ofthe good. Rather, such a state provides a neutral
fi-ameworkwithin which different and potentially conflictingconceptionsofthe good can be pursued.
In fact, fiom the liberal individualist standpoint, a free and just state is one which remains neutral
and equally tolerant of the different conceptions ofthe good life held by,its individual citizens,
without promotingor penalizing any of such conceptions.
What then, according to liberal individualisn~,are the legitimate functions ofthe state? In the liberal
individualistic view, people possess natural or pre-political freedom: state is not a natural entity;
rather it is an artificial, but a necessary construct;a necessary evil. Since freedom is natural to the
individual, the function ofthe state should mainly be that ofguaranteeingand protecting individual
freedom. The state, in other words, is a mechanism for safeguarding the personal security and
political rights of citizens,who enter into political life and place themselvesunder external authority
for the limited end of protection against unwarranted interference by others. This idea offreedom
as the absence of interference by others, otherwise known as the negative conception of freedom,
has dominated much ofthe liberal individualisttradition.
The individualist conception ofthe self, tlie idea ofstate neutralityand the idea offreedom as no%-
interference form an important, if not the basic core ofthe political theory of liberal individualism.
While much ofmodern political theory and political practice has been influenced and dominated by
these ideas, they have been met with strong criticism from a number oftheoretical perspectees,
some ofwhich are fascism, sarvodaya, communism and feminism. Two profound critiques ofthe
liberal individualist perspective are found in the communitarian and civic republican perspectives.
ASmentioned above, these perspectives not only criticize the basic premise of liberal individualism,
they also put forward different compellingalternative conceptualizations of the nature of the self,
the relationship between the state and the citizen and the idea of freedom.
The debate between individualism and communitarianis~~i centers around the question: is political
reality shaped by the decisions and actions of individuals, defincd as persons standing at adistance
(or separate) ftom community bonds or is it shaped by social beings whose identity and behaviour
is defined by the social gro~~ps/con~munities to which they belong? Should thejust statebe constructed
from the standpoint of how to foster the well being of individuals or should it be constructed from
tlie standpoint of how to realize an ideal comniunity? In other words, is tlie basic unit ofpolitical
analysis the individual orthe community? In sesponding to this question, liberalsand co~nmunitarians
hold different and apparently conflictingpositions. While the liberal individualists, as mentioned in
the brief introduction given above, sees political rcality to be shaped by the decisions and actions of
free and rights-bearing individuals, con~munitariansemphasize the relatioilship between the person
and the comniunityand see this reIationship to be the bedrock ofpolitical theory and practice. The
liberal-communitarian debate is, ~~~~~~efore, essentially a debate between those who favour individual
rights and autonon~yand those who emphasize the b o ~ ~ofcommunity
ds in political life.
Co~nniunitariansare first and foremost concerned with community. Two or more people may be
understood to constitute a con~munitywhen they share acommon conception ofthe good and see,
this good as partly constitutive oftheir identity or selves. Such a "constitutive community"may be
a close fiiendship, family nlationship, neiglibourhoodor even a compreliensivepolitical community.
Comn~unitarinnsinsist that each of us as individuals develop our identity, talents and pursuits in life
mainly in and through the context ofa conirnunity. We are by nature social and cultural beings.
Since the commi~nitydeternines and shapes individual nature, political life must start with a concern
for the community, and not the individual. In other words, tlie locus of philosophical reflection on the
ideal and just state ought to be the coln~iiiinityand not the individual.
Colnmunitarians criticize liberal political theory mainly for being mistakenly and irreparably
individualistic. The liberal conceptions of the sctf and the relationship between the individual
and the state are, tiley argue, inherently flawcd, unduly limited as well as misrepresentative of
the true nature of society. In the communitarian view, it is not enough to think in terms of a
two-level relationship with the individual at one levcl and the state at the other. Groups and
communities occupy an important intermediate positioli between the individual and the state
and should be includcd ainong the kinds of rights and duty bearing units whose inter-
relationships arc explored. By prioritizing the rights and freedom of individuals and by
neglecting the iniportance and contribution of conitnunity membership to social and political
life, liberal 'individualism ignores the extent to which it is the community/culture in which
people live that shape who they are and the values they have. In the sections below, we,examine
the communitarian understanding of the value oi'community membership as well as its position on
the idea of state neutrality.
Criticizing the liberal individualist conception oftlie relationship between the selfand its ends,
communitarians ask whether we can really step back from particillar vaiues tliat we Iiavc arid
change them for new ones, or are we rather made the very people tliat we are by tlie values that
we endorse so tliat detachriient is impossible? Hi~nianbeings, they argue, are essentially social
beings. As sucl~,we neither choose nor reject our social and conini~~riity ends and attachments;
rather we discover therii. We are neither fi.ee nor standing at a distance from our social and
coln~nunityends; instead, we find ourselves located/situated in them. For instance, we do not
choose our family, caste or nation; we find o~lrselveslocated in tliern. We then determine our
conception ofthe good and elids given our place, position and situation in a family, religion and
nation. According to co~iiniu~~itarianis~ii we are never free from all social roles and community
identities. Our mem bersliip of social gt.oups and conimunities determine and constitute our identity
and ~uiderstatidingoftlie good life. We cannot always stand back and opt out of social relations and
cornmullity iiiembersliip.Our social relations and roles, or at least sorne must be taken as given. As
Saridel notes 'I can interpret the tileaning of tlie roles I find myself in, but I cannot reject tlie roles
themselves, or t l ~ goals
e internal to them as wol-thless. Since these goals are constitutive of me as
a person, they have to be taken as given in deciding what to do with my life; the question ofgood in
11iylife can only be a question of how best to interpret theis meaning. It lnaltes no sense to say that
they have no val~lefor me, since there is no *me'standing behind them, no self prior to their c11,Is
or constitutive attachments. The self is constituted by and not prior to its ends'.
In this way conimunitaria~isdenounce the aliistorical. asocial and disembodied conception of the
individual self. According to them, this conception overlooks tlie ways in which it is the kind of
society in which people live that atyect thcir understanding, both of themselves and of how they
sho~lldlead their lives. A valuable life, they argue, is one that is filled with c o ~ n n ~ i t ~ n eand
nts
relations: and what makes them co~n~nit is precisely that they are not the sort of things that people
can or ouglit to question every day.
In the communitarian perspective then, to accept the individualistic conception oftlie self is to see
olieself as disembodicd, detaclicd and sharing a vafuntary relationship with one's social ends and
attachments. They oppose this voluntaristic pictitre of'tlie relationsliip between the selfand its ends
for ignoring the extent to which we are embedded or situated and paletiallyconstituted by social
roles and community membership. Sandel criticizes tl~isconception of the self for being
c'~lneti~~~~nbered". A Iternativcly, he advances the notion ot'the "sit~~ated self', the sclf or subject
who is ilivariably a lnernber of a con~rnunityand whose well being rcsts orr tlie good of liis/her
community. For Sandel, as lor other co~nlnu~iifaria~is,the common good oftlie community is prior to
the rights oftlie individuals
111advancing an alternative account, 6f the nature of tlie slate, cornrnunitarians argue for tlic
abandonmenl of liberal neutralily in favo~trorthe politics oftlie common good. The common
\
good is,conceive as a substantive conceptioli of tlie good lil'e, which defines the community
way of life as we I as ~rovidesstan ards fro111 which individual preferences and values are
I' good fornis the basis on wliich different co~~ceptions
evaluaLed. In otlie~words, the comnioli
of the good are ranked. 'The weight given to an indididual's conception then depends on how
much it cosrespolids,to or deviates fioni the conlliion good.
The common good, cori~~nunitarians believe, is required not only for guiding people's decisions
about the good life, but also for establishing a just and legitimate political co~iimunity.According to
Taylor, the common good is required to vindicate and make legitinlate the j~~stice-demands ofa
welfare state. At the heart of the theory ofjustice in a welfare state is the claim that those privileged
ought to sacrifice a portion oftheir rights and rewards for the sake ofothers (the underprivileged).
For instance, in a liberal capitalist society, the propertied are required to sacrifice solne oftheir
property (derived in the form of taxes) for the benefit ofthe non-propertied and for sustaining a just
society. According to Taylor, claims for such a sacrifice in an individualistic society would seem
improper, if not unjust, as we would be required to sacrifice our rightdpropet-tyfor the sake ofthose
witli whom we share no colnm~lnityidentity or comlilon way of life. Ifwe are distanced from a
con~munityor shared way of life, we would necessarily be ilnwilling to shoulder sucli justice-
demands of a welfare state. Justice, co~nniunitarians argue, is rootcd in a community whose primary
bond is the shared understanding ofthe good. A just state then, is not one that remains neutral
towards all individual conceptions ofthe good: rather it is one wl~ichencourages its citizens to adopt
conceptions oftlie good that agree with the colnlnon good, \vhile discouraging conceptions of the
good that conflict with it.
In the communitarian view then. the guarantee of a free and just state is deeply intertwined with the
well being ofthe community. The ideal state is one that elnploys its power and authority to encourage
the continuation and health oftliosecultural traditions and values that serve to determinethe comrnon
good. Commu~iitarianism,thils, endows the state witli apositivehnction of prornoting the common
good, rather than tnerely with a negative filnction ofensuri~lgan absence of interferellce in the
realm of individual rights. It is worthy of mention that a number of political theorists in India are
influenced by and draw from the arguments oftlze communitarian perspective.
. So far we have concentrated on the communitarian perspective in political theory. In the following
sections, we examine thk main ideas and arguments ofthe civic republican tndition and attempt to
compare this tradition with the comrnunitarian perspective.
The term republicanism is defined and understood in contrast with nlonarcl~yor the personal rule of
kings and emperors. Wl~ereasa monarch enjoys personal authority over his subjects and rules his
realm as his personal possession and more or less Lo realize his personal interests, government in a
republic is, in principle, the common business ofthe citizens conducted by them for realizing the
common good. The idea of republ icanism, thus, develops from a desire and the attempt to replace
'the empire oflnen with the empire of law'.
The civic republican perspective begins by adopting some ofthe important ideas of Greek political
begins, as does Gtzck political thinking, from the premise that
thought. Infact, civic republicat~is~n
man is by nature a social-political animal. Men, however, arealso moral beings as they embody
certain rnoral purposes. Naturally therefore, and in order to realize their interests and develop their
true selves, nlen ri~ustlive together in a political association, more specifically in a self-governing
political con~munity.A self-governing political co~nniunityis one in which citizens participate to
realize the good of both the individual as well as the collective. In a republic then, citizens are
essentially virtuous as they piace tlie co~nniongood above their particular individual goods. To put
in a nutshell, a good polity is an association of good citizens, good citizens being those who possess
the qi~alityofcivic virtue or the predisposition to seek the good of all in public matters. To use
Aristotle's words, the end ofa political comniunity "is the good life and the good in politics is the
7
comtnon interest '.
Underlying and contributing to the civic republican ideal of a good polity are somewhat distinct
ideas of freedom and government - ideas, which republicans conclude, go beyond and are
deeper than tlie do~iiinantliberal notions of freed0111and government. It is this distinctiveness
whicli, they believe, makes civic republicanis~na conipelling theory of political order and
freedom. Below, we exaniine the civic republican ideas of freedom and government.
In an important work titled Two Concepts qf Liherfy (1 958), Isaiah Berlin drew a distinction
between what lie understood to be two difircnt conceptions of liberty, namely negative and
positive liberty. The idea of liberty has since been i~nderstoodwith reference to this distinction.
According to Berlin, the negative conception of liberty required the absence of interference
by others, where interl'erence be understood broadly to mean any intentional form of obstruction
or coercion. The positive conception of liberty, alternatively, required a presence rather than
an absence - the presence of self-mastery, where self-mastery is interpreted as the ability of
an individual to master his passions with his reason. In 1988, Benjamin Constant, in a famous
lecture titled, "'The Liberty of the Ancients and the Liberty of the Moderns" developed the
distinction between negative and positive liberty: while the 'liberty of the moderns' was
identified with the negative conception of liberty, defined as tlie absence of interference, the 'liberty
ofthe ancients' was dcfined differently, yet positively as the right of the individual to participate in
the process ofdernocratic self-determination. It is worthy af~nentionthat the liberal political tradition
has been domi~zateciby the negative conception of freedom as non-interference.
According to tlie civic republican tmdition, the dis'tinction between negative and positive freedom,
between the liberty ofthe ancients and the liberty of the moderns, fails to capture the true essence
and value offreedom. As an alternative, republican theorists develop and advocate the idea of
republican freedo~n.Republican freedom, they argue, although akin to the traditional distinction,
transcends it to deliver a richer and more valid account of freedom. As noted by Pettit, "the
republican conception of liberty is akin to the negative one in ~naintainingthat what liberty requires
is the absence of something, not necessarily the presence. It is akin to the positive conception in
Iiolding that that which must be absent has to do with mastery rather than with interference.
Freedom consists, not in the presence of sel f-mastery, and not in the absence of interference by
others. but rather in the absence of mastery by others: in the absence ... of domination. Freedom
just is non-domination".
Underlying the republican notion of freedorn as non-domination is an understanding ofthe meaning
of domination as well as its relationship with interference. Domination, as understood by the
republica~is;isthe ability and capacity ofone agent to exercise power over the other, pallicularly
the power ofarbitrarv interference. In other words, a person is don~inatedby an other, and thereby
unfree, to the extent that the other has the capacity to interfere on an arbitrary basis in hidher
affairs. Such a relationship ofdomination is exemplified in the relationship between master and
slave/servant, employer and employee and even I~usbandand wife, where the dominant agent
interferesarbitrarily in the affairs ofthe other; thereby restricting the heedom ofthe other. According
to civic republicans,the distinction between negative and positive liberty fails to address the denial
of freedoin asdominatioli. It is such indifference to the notion of donlination as adenial of freedom
that allowtd liberals to remain for long tolerant ~Trelationshipsof dominance at home and in
workplaces.
As mentioned above, the negative conception of freedom as non-interference follows from the
liberal understanding offreedo~nas natural and the state as a necessary evil. For the republicans,
in contrast, the cause of fieedom rests scluarely wit11 the law and the state. The laws of a good
state - a republic, create tl1c freedom enjoyed by citizens; they do not offend against that freedom.
The state, in this view, is not antagonistic to civic Freedom: rather it is "freedom-friendly". To use
Harri~~gton's words, *'liberty,in the proper sense, is Iibertyb the laws, not Iibertyfrolnthe laws".
It may be noted that-with the ideaof freedom as non-domination, civic rep~tblicanismtends to agree
with the coriception of Geople as situated in certain communities and cultures rather than with the
individualistic conception ofthe self as detached and disembodied. Doruination is often associated
with certain cultural ~narltersSLICII as gender, race, religion and class anlong others. A person
facing domination is more liltely to belong to a vuInerable class. Freedoni as non-domination can be
enjoyed and guaranteed only in so far as the salient groups to which these people belong enjoy it.
Upliolding tlie republican idea ofti-eedom, Pettit argues. tliat it is o~ilywhen tlle idea offi-eedoni as
non-interfewr~ceis replaced with tliat ol'frcedorii as lion-domination would the political theory and
practice ot'such stri~gglcsas l'emi~lism,multiculti~ralismand envirunmen~alismgain recognition and
response. Iiifact. it is arguecl tliat tlie republican notion oi'fi.cedom wcnt out o f i'asliion in tlie 18th
century, when citizenship was extended beyond tlic real111ofpropertied males, and when it was no
longerpossible to tliink oi'mnltingall citizelis, particularly woriien and servants, free in the rep~~blican
sense. Freedom, ifgi~itranteedto all, had to bc less demnnding.
It may not be incorrect to arguc: that under-lying tlie rep~tblicanidea of'freedorii as non-domination
is a value ofcquality, wliercby no one is dominated by, and t l i ~ ~ i~rieqi~al
s to the other. Frcedom
reqi~irestlie capacity ofcacli individ~~al to staiitl asi111C C I L I ~ I with f e l l o ~ c i t i ~ ein
n s shared awareness
tliat no one lias tlie po\\fcl-ofasbitral.y interl'crence over tlic otl~cr.'I'lie idea of sepublican fieedoni
appears to be somecvhut niore co~npatiblewith and wcl I-disposed to tlic ideas ol'democracy, welfare
and enipowcrnient - idcas that have gaincd ci~i.rencyand iml~orta~ice in conteriiporary political
theory and practice.
Underlying the iclcrl oftlie rcp~~blican government asc the pri~iciplcof' civic virtue, the idea of
coni~iio~i good and tlie notion ofactive civic participation. Tkc repi~blicnnidea oi'civic virtue
niay be understood as he willingness to set the columon goocl ;~bnveone's own or fttmily's
interests. Infact, the idea of citizc~lsbeing vi~.tuousis an integral part of tlie tradition ol'civic
republicanism. Civic repubIic:lnisrn. i n ii sinii lar vein with com~iii~nitarixns, r e q i ~ i ~that
t s wc :IS
citizens place tlie common good above our parlicular inciivici~~al interests. For it is only by placing
the common good -the good of all - :~bovt:0111.private interests that we would guarantee and
realize tlie value of Sreeclom as non-domination. Republicn~isemphatically claim tliat withot~tcivic
t ' , republic wi I I degenerate into a battlefield ol'rival intcrests.
v i ~ ~ u[lie
While the repi~blicnndoctrine lays great strcsson tlie ti~nda~iiental importance ofcivic virtue, it lays
eq~1a1stress on tlle fiagi lity ol'virtue -the danger that rt people or its le:lders would become corn~pt,
thereby tllrealening tlic republic. Civic republicans are cautious of the state oi'ftcinls exercising
power in an arbitrary \my, tllercby denying republican fi~ocdom.I-low then can the state and its
of?cials be ~srcvzntedlisorn exercising power in an arbitrary way? Repi~blicansalso recognize that
peoplc clu 11otmakc LIP11per-Seclly Iianiio~iiousor Iiomogeno~~s body with identical intel-ests; rather
they are divided 011the basis of interests. Such division of interests could translate into a niajor
threat to both civic virtue and [lie republic. I-low thcii slioi~lda t.epwblic be organized so as to
reconcile tlie different co~iflicting interests in society?
The republican idea ofcitizetlship, however, ouglltto be contrasted with tlie liberal ideaofcitizenship:
while the latter regards citizenship as a right passively enjoyed by citizens who desire fi-eedomfro111
esternal restraints, tlie i'ornmer identifiescitizensliip witli those rights which empower citizens with
tlie freed0111 to actively engage with other citize~isunder conditions and in pul.suance of freedom
and equality. Citizenship, ill the republican view, is an office and a responsibility that is proudly
assumed by citizens. To be a citizen in a republic is to be a self-governing ~iieniberof a self-
governing conimunity.
The advocacy oftlie ideas ofcivic virlue. co~iinio~i good, active civic citizenship, mixed constitutions
and separation of po\vers make up an impo~.tant,if not t lie core of tlie idea of republican government.
Understandably then, civic republica~iismis seeti to be co~nple~lie~itary if not in support oftlie idea
of de~nocrncy.It is wit.11 iliese ideas of government as well as with tlie idea of freedom as non-
domination that rep~~blicans aini at replacing 'the empire ofmen with tlie empire of laws'.
- - -- -
28.8 SUMMARY
In tlie sections above, we have examined, separately though, two important perspectives in
contemporary political theory, namely co~iimi~nitarianism and civic republicanism. In this
section and by way of concl~rdingthis unit, we niake a comparative assess~iientof tliese
perspectives by Iiigliligliting tlie ideas 011 wliich tliey complement and differ from each other.
We also attenipt to bring out some of the st]-engtlisand weaknesses of these two perspectives.
'I'o begin with, we look at [lie points of co1ii13Icliientaritybetween tliese two perspectives. As
rne~itionedabove, both com~~iunitarianisn~ and civic republicanisni contain I'orcefi~lcritiqiies
and co~iipell i n ~alternatives lo tlie ideas of liberal individualisl~i.Firstly, they botli begin by
cllaracterizing IILIIII~IIS as social and political animals who in order to realize their interests
and lead good lives o i ~ g hto t live in rissociation witli one another. Secondly, both perspectives
criticize the libcral individualist conception of tlie self as a self detached and disenibodied
from its ends: while fbr the cornn~~~nitarians this conception is unreal, the rept~blicanssee it to
be i~~ldesirable for tlie establishment o f a good and fiee polity. l'hirdly, botli endow tlie stace
witll'a positive rather than a negative role. In fact a just state, according to both perspectives,
rather than being neutral, is one 1-hat protects and promotes Ilic common good. ina all^,-botli
c o ~ ~ ~ ~ i ~ ~ ~ n i t a and
s i a lcivic
i i s r i ircp~~l~licanis~ii
see the community and ct~ltl~ral ~iiembersliipas
playing on i~npol-tantrole in deter~iii~iing the clioices that we ~iialcein the public sphere: while
coni~ii~~~iitarians 21-emore candid about tlie centrality ofco111111~11iity membership to i~idividualchoices,
civic republicans make a more subtle statelllent when they advocate tlie idea of freedom as now
doiiiination.
An impol-tant dift'ercnce bet wee!^ these perspectives is that wliiie the cotnmunitarians reject the
possibility ofa neutral state, civic rep~~blicanisni
advocates tlie possibility ofa state, wliich transcends
religio~~sand other related divides,
While the cornm~~nitarian ilrid civic republican perspectives are recognized for tlie contributions
they riialte to contemporary pol itical theory, they have been criticized by some political theorists,
particularly liberal individualists. According to lhese political tlieo~.ists, by prioritizing
colii~ni~nity niembersliip, cornm~~tiitarinns undervalue the i~iiportnnceof individual rights and
aulonomy. Infact they leave tlie indivitlual a hostage to the will and good of tlie comm~~nity,
which could, and oftcn does redi~cetlie space of individual Sruedom and choice. The idca ol'a
C O ~ T I I I I ~good
II such 3 good is dil'ficult to deterniine in societies
is criticized on Ilie groi~~~cIstIiat
that are characterized by dcrp pluralisn~.Infact il'dcterniined, the idca of the colnnioti good
can have conservative and repl-essive conno~ations,tiiainly because it woi~ldprovide a standard
from wliich individuaf conceptions of the good wo~~lcl be judged and thereby, advanced or
eliniinated. Both tl~eseperspectives. therel'ore. Ptil to see aticl guard against tlie possibility of
the common good becoming n perpetrator ol'dotni~~ntion and ir?justice.
To conclude it may bc appropriate to say that Ibr us in India, an understandi~~g ofthe com~nunitarian
and civic rep~~blicari perspectives is rclevant in tc~msol'botl~politicill theory and political practice.
011 one hand, wc need to ~~nders~and and assess the difl'ercnt contributions niade by these perspectives
as well as ofthe alternative principles they advocate. 011the
in.theircritique of liberal inclivid~~alism
other Iland, we need to relate these conlributions and nlternativc principles to our present political
practice.
28.9 EXERCISES
I) Wliat do you understand by communitarianism? Explain in your own words,
29.1 INTRODUCTION
The disintegration of socialist states in European Europe culminating in the break-up oftlle mighty
Soviet Unio~imarks tlie tl-iumpliof liberal ism over socialism, democracy over one-party rille and
luissez,fbirc.econol~~ies over centralized ecol.lomy.The bipolar world has given way to a unipolar
world. In tlie wake of thes,e developments, the world is witnessing fundari~elitalcfianges i n the
for111of liberalization, privatization and globalization. Tfze trade barriers among the states arc gctling
blurred and a globalized market is emerging. In centralized and mixed economies, the process of
disinvestlne~itand structural adjustments is leading to the shrinking oftlie public sector. How will
these epochal changes manifest thetnselves ill tlie fort11ofnewe~+concems in Political Theory is an
important question that needs to be considered.
The above ill~lstrationsnialte it clear that every political theorist addresses Iiiniselfto certain ltey
issues and problems tliat tlie society of his times is facing. In sl~orl,politicnli.hco7-y in every
epoch c?f'hisloly hrrs been the rpspon.se ofthe yoliticnl thinker. to Ihe prevailing pulilicui' nizd
socialcondition?;.In fact, one can go to tlie extent of saying that all niajor political theories liave
emerged in situations wlien societies were standing at the cross-roads oi~liistoryand liad to make
hard-choices. The era ofglobalization is ~ ~ n d o ~ b t eadmoment
ly in Iiistol-ywhe11societies liave
cliose~i(or have been forced to choose) a certain course for tlie~nselveswliose collsequences will
be far-reaclii~ig.The question that I I I L I Sbe
~ considered and answered is: What will be the nature ol'
political tlieory that will evolve it1 the era ofglobalization? J-low will political theorists respond to the
pl~enonienonofglobalization? Wliat questions and concerns wil I be central to tliern? What impact
will globalizatio~iliave on state,society and tlie individual? What so~~toflocal, national and in~ernational
order (or disorder) will emerge as a consequenceof libe~.aIization,privatization and globalization?
- - - -- - --
It is, however, evident tliat these goals of liberal and Marxist theory were never realized, at least
not fully. In liberal democracies, the participation of people remained only marginal and ruling
power got concentrated in tlie hands oftlie political elite. This pheno~iienonhas been aptly described
as the "iro~ilaw of oligarcliy". The socialist societies, on the other hand, witnessed excessive
centralization of power in the hands of the colnlnllnist party leadership. The exploitation of the
workers not o111ycontinued, but in some cases it became more intense. The inequalities within
liberal as well as socialist societies became more acute. H~rriianrights did not reach the disadvantaged
stratas of society in full nieasurc. Thus, the gland utopian and norniative vision of Liberal and
Marxisttl~eoiyainiingat liberty, eq~lalityand harmony remained unfulfilled.The inequalities aniong
different co~lntriesalso increased. These failures of Liberal and Marxist tlieory alike gave rise to
the Few Right and the New LeJj movelnents 011 the one hand and generated a scnse of cynicism
and nihilism, on the other.
iJ
Tlie present day welfare state has become what may be callcd a n~axi~ncrl state. tt see~iisthat in
the wake of liberalization, privatization and globalization, some of the welfare functions of
the ~iiodernwelfare state riiay slirinl<.While tlie filtul-estate will continue to perforni regulatory
functions, its distribzltive fi~nctions,are liliely to become less and less. In fact, the state might
beco~iie(to use Robert Nozick's term) a mirlifi7nlstole. 'I'lie pliilosopliy of utilitarianism with its
focus on the greatest happiness ofthe greatest nuuiber, wliicli has been the lincli-pin oftlie [nodern
welfare state will no more remain the guiding principle ofthe r~1t~11.e state. Given the iridividi~alist
(Lockean) niajoritarian i~nderpinning of liberal democracy, the state will liave to buy legitimacyfor
itself at periodic elections and, therefore, it will find it very difficultto altogether give up the welfare
functions. Tlius, we call say that political theory in tlie era oi'globalization will reflecl the strzrctz~ral
anzDivalence ofmodern .slut@and tlie tensions and paradoxes, pul Is and pushes inherent in politics
as it operates under tlie sway of market forces.
its activity Political Tlleory in tlie era ofglobalization will have to address itselfto the pheno~*lzenon
ofautonolnoc~smarket, shrinkingstate and assertive civil society, Increasing P ~ ~ b lInterest
ic Litigation
(PIL) has driven various organs of government to tlie wall in inany respects. For example, Nurtnuda
Bnchao Andolan being spearl~eadedby Medlia Pateltar and Arundliati Roy, Chipko Movelnent
of Sunder Lal B a l i ~ ~ g ~the~ n aPeople's
, Union Tor Civil Liberties, Lok Satta, Association for :
Democratic Refom aticl Transparency International are all directed at keeping tlie various organs
of govern~ilentin reasonable limits. NGOs are emerging as a countervailingpower vis-l-vis the
state. The seriousness of tlie problelrr of global warnling, green liouse gases, ozone hole are today
matters of concern of all goverliments - de~nocraticand a~~tlioritarian. The indiscri~ninate
deforestation and iricreasi~ignoise and air pollutiot? has brouglit the basic qitestions of relation '
between man and nature, the limits to iridustrialization and econo~nicgrowth to the fore. ,
Political theory cannot avoid addressing itself adequately to all these questions. No state,
today, can ignom or underplay the question of gender justice, the demands for empowerment
of women, the riglits of tlle child and the ~tnbornand the iss~lesoT positive discrimination.
l'olitical theory in the era ofglobalization will have to address itselfto the question: how political
institutions and structures condition and get conditioned by social power?
The nineteenth centuly constitutionalisni has to cope with the clial lenge of globalization. Globalization
will affect the conventional notion offederalisni in the light of newer relations between federal
states and their federating units with the WTO and other global institutions like the World Bank.
Lidija Basta Fleiner, a re'11ownedSwiss scholar offederalisni, has aptly tenlied it as "democratic
conrrol offedera1izedpotl)er and thejedemlized control oj'democmcy". As a consequence of
globalization political ct~llilrewi 11 reflect greater decentralized loj~altyon one hand, and greater
supra-state loyalty on the otlier; thus, the crucial issue before the tlieory offederalism will be to
build a federal contractual equil ibrium within a niajoritarian democratic setting and to bring different
groups together by tra~isce~idingpa~ticularistic loyalties,The structural tensions which globalization
will generate will impinge on ~najoritariandemocracy and anti-majoritarian federalism. Libertarian
democracy (of Robert Nozickean type) will not itself be able to cope with the politics of group
differences in the process of nation-building.It will, therefore, be structurally incapable of~iieeting
the challenge of multi-culturalism on tlie centrality ofdiversities and collective rights.
111 tlie establislied liberal democracies, there will be growth ofjudicial powerin tlie wake of
globalization arid this, in turn, will trigger greater concern about judicial independence. The
judiciary will get Inore directly inter-meshed with democratic politics. This judicial
transfoniiation will have two ~najordimensions: strengthening the power of ji~dicialreview
and adoption of political pluralism in tlie appointment process of judges. There is another
implication of globalization for the theory of federal deniocratic states. Liberal welfare state
is wedded to tlie liotion of equal representation of all individuals, which is a procedural
commitment lo inhospitable differences. Multi-culturalism based on diversities and collective
rights of different coli~mi~nitiesis lilcely to be anti-thetical to globalization which will invariably
intensify inequalities alllong and within states. Hence, [lie niere constitutional guarantee of equal
rights alone will not be enough to ensure equality, unless it is accompanied by right to be equal
irrespective of differences.This question will become increasingly crucial.
29.1 4 SUMMARY
In tlie foregoing part oftliis unit, we have highlighted live niaiil points in an attempt to spell out the
contours of political theo~yin the era ofglobalization.
First, that both Libei4alismand Marxism have lost their pre-eminence as explanatory ideologies.
The interface of state, society and ~narltetis evolving it1 a way where there is I~egenionyof the
market. The challenge of post-modernisni Iias qilestioned some ofthe basic tenets of modern
political theory like "the lneta narrative" mid broad categories like "class". Given this scenario,
it seems that political theory in the era of globalizatio~iis going to be some sort of a synthesis
of Liberalism, Marxism and Post-Modernism.
Thirdly, tlie emergence of identity politics is attl-actinggreater and greater attention of political
thcorists. The phenomenon ofglobalizationand tlie rise of identity politics will lead to individual's
decentralized loyalty. On the one hand, identity politics will lead suL>-stateloyalty and 011 the
Other liancl, globalization will lead to individuals' greater supra-state loyalty. As a consequence
oftliis twin plie~iometion,tlie loyalty to tlie nation state will get compromised.
Fourthly, in the era ofglobalization, political theory will have to address itselfto the phenomenon of
growing ethnic conflicts, rising fundamental ism, increasing intoleranceand dominance of majorities
leading to the n~arginalisationof minorities.
29.1 5 EXERCISES
I) What is Identity Politics?